have_v produce_v those_o argument_n by_o which_o some_o shameless_a person_n endeavour_v to_o maintain_v both_o the_o conveniency_n and_o necessity_n of_o such_o common_a brothel_n house_n have_v bishop_n jewel_n be_v alive_a apolog._n and_o see_v but_o half_o so_o much_o from_o dr._n harding_n plead_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o common_a woman_n permit_v by_o the_o pope_n in_o rome_n he_o will_v have_v think_v that_o to_o call_v to_o he_o a_o advocate_n for_o the_o stew_n have_v not_o beeen_n enough_o but_o that_o doctor_n be_v nor_o half_a so_o wise_a as_o our_o author_n be_v and_o do_v not_o fit_a each_o argument_n with_o a_o several_a antidote_n as_o our_o author_n do_v hope_v thereby_o by_o but_o vain_o hope_v that_o the_o argument_n allege_v will_v be_v wash_v away_o some_o of_o our_o late_a critic_n have_v a_o like_a design_n in_o mark_v all_o the_o wanton_a and_o obscene_a epigram_n in_o martial_a with_o a_o hand_n or_o asterism_n to_o the_o intent_n that_o young_a scholar_n when_o they_o read_v that_o author_n may_v be_v forewarned_a to_o pass_v they_o over_o whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v find_v that_o too_o many_o young_a fellow_n or_o wanton_a wit_n as_o our_o author_n call_v they_o do_v ordinary_o skip_v over_o the_o rest_n and_o pitch_n on_o those_o which_o be_v so_o mark_v and_o set_v out_o unto_o they_o and_o much_o i_o fear_v that_o it_o will_v so_o fall_v out_o with_o our_o author_n also_o who_o argument_n will_v be_v study_v and_o make_v use_n of_o when_o his_o answer_n will_v not_o fol._n 253._o otherwise_o some_o suspect_n have_v he_o survive_v king_n edward_n the_o six_o we_o may_v present_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o king_n henry_n the_o nine_o our_o author_n speak_v this_o of_o henry_n fitz_n roy_fw-fr the_o king_n natural_a son_n by_o elizabeth_n blunt_n and_o the_o great_a disturbance_n he_o may_v have_v wrought_v to_o the_o king_n two_o daughter_n in_o their_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n a_o prince_n indeed_o who_o his_o father_n very_o high_o cherish_v create_v he_o duke_n of_o somerset_n and_o richmond_n earl_n of_o nottingham_n and_o earl_n marshal_n of_o england_n and_o raise_v he_o to_o no_o small_a hope_n of_o the_o crown_n itself_o as_o appear_v plain_o by_o the_o statute_n 22_o h._n 8._o c._n 7._o but_o whereas_o our_o author_n speak_v it_o on_o a_o supposition_n of_o his_o survive_a king_n edward_n the_o six_o he_o shall_v have_v do_v well_o in_o the_o first_o place_n to_o have_v inform_v himself_o whether_o this_o henry_n and_o prince_n edward_n be_v at_o any_o time_n alive_a together_o and_o if_o my_o book_n speak_v true_a they_o be_v not_o henry_n of_o somerset_z and_o richmond_n die_v the_o 22._o of_o july_n anno_fw-la 1536._o prince_z edward_z not_o be_v bear_v till_o the_o 12._o of_o october_n an._n 1537._o so_o that_o if_o our_o author_n have_v be_v but_o as_o good_a at_o law_n or_o grammar_n as_o he_o be_v at_o heraldry_n he_o will_v not_o have_v speak_v of_o a_o survivor-ship_n in_o such_o a_o case_n when_o the_o one_o person_n have_v be_v long_o dead_a before_o the_o other_o be_v bear_v these_o incoherent_a animadversion_n be_v thus_o pass_v over_o we_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o our_o author_n principle_n for_o weaken_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n and_o subject_v it_o in_o all_o proceed_n to_o the_o power_n of_o parliament_n concern_v which_o he_o have_v before_o give_v we_o two_o rule_n preparatory_a to_o the_o great_a business_n which_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n first_o that_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n be_v subject_a in_o whatsoever_o touch_v temporal_n to_o secular_a law_n and_o national_a custom_n and_o the_o laity_n at_o pleasure_n limit_v canon_n in_o this_o behalf_n lib._n 3._o n._n 61._o and_o second_o that_o the_o king_n by_o consent_n of_o parliament_n direct_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a court_n in_o case_n of_o heresy_n lib._n 4._o n._n 88_o and_o if_o the_o ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v thus_o curb_v and_o feââered_v when_o it_o be_v at_o the_o high_a there_o be_v no_o question_n to_o be_v make_v but_o that_o it_o be_v much_o more_o obnoxious_a to_o the_o secular_a court_n when_o it_o begin_v to_o sink_v in_o reputation_n and_o decline_v in_o strength_n how_o true_a and_o justifiable_a or_o rather_o how_o unjustifiable_a and_o false_a these_o two_o principle_n be_v we_o have_v show_v already_o and_o must_v now_o look_v into_o the_o rest_n which_o our_o author_n in_o pursuance_n of_o the_o main_a design_n have_v present_v to_o we_o but_o first_o we_o must_v take_v notice_n of_o another_o passage_n concern_v the_o call_n of_o convocation_n or_o synodical_a meeting_n former_o call_v by_o the_o two_o archbishop_n in_o their_o several_a province_n by_o their_o own_o sole_a and_o proper_a power_n as_o our_o author_n grant_v fol._n 190._o to_o which_o he_o add_v fol._n 190._o but_o after_o the_o statute_n of_o praemunire_n be_v make_v which_o do_v much_o restrain_v the_o papal_a power_n and_o subject_v it_o to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n when_o archbishop_n call_v no_o more_o convocation_n by_o their_o sole_a and_o absolute_a command_n but_o at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o king_n in_o which_o i_o must_v confess_v myself_o to_o be_v much_o unsatisfied_a though_o i_o find_v the_o same_o position_n in_o some_o other_o author_n my_o reason_n two_o 1._o because_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o statute_n of_o praemunire_n to_o restrain_v the_o archbishop_n from_o call_v these_o meeting_n as_o before_o that_o act_n extend_v only_o to_o such_o as_o purchase_v or_o pursue_v or_o cause_n to_o be_v purchase_v or_o pursue_v in_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n or_o elsewhere_o any_o such_o translatation_n process_n sentence_n of_o excommunication_n bull_n instrument_n or_o any_o other_o thing_n whatsoever_o which_o touch_v the_o king_n against_o he_o his_o crown_n and_o his_o regality_n or_o his_o realm_n or_o to_o such_o as_o bring_v within_o the_o realm_n or_o they_o receive_v or_o make_v thereof_o notification_n or_o any_o other_o execution_n whatsoever_o within_o the_o same_o realm_n or_o without_o etc._n etc._n and_o 2._o because_o i_o find_v in_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o submission_n of_o the_o clergy_n that_o it_o be_v recognize_v and_o acknowledge_v by_o the_o clergy_n in_o their_o convocation_n that_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o say_a clergy_n be_v 19_o always_o have_v be_v and_o aught_o to_o be_v assemble_v always_o by_o the_o king_n writ_n and_o if_o they_o have_v be_v always_o call_v by_o the_o king_n writ_n then_o certain_o before_o the_o statute_n of_o praemunire_n for_o that_o the_o whole_a clergy_n in_o their_o convocation_n shall_v public_o declare_v and_o avow_v a_o notorious_a falsehood_n especial_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o fact_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v imagine_v i_o must_v confess_v myself_o to_o be_v at_o a_o loss_n in_o this_o intricate_a labyrinth_n unless_o perhaps_o there_o be_v some_o critical_a difference_n in_o those_o elder_a time_n between_o a_o synod_n and_o a_o convocation_n the_o first_o be_v call_v by_o the_o archbishop_n in_o their_o several_a and_o respective_a province_n as_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n the_o other_o only_o by_o the_o king_n as_o his_o occasion_n and_o affair_n do_v require_v the_o same_o but_o whether_o this_o be_v so_o or_o not_o be_v not_o much_o material_a as_o the_o case_n now_o stand_v the_o clergy_n not_o assemble_v since_o the_o 25_o of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o but_o as_o they_o be_v convocate_v and_o convene_v by_o the_o king_n wâit_v only_o i_o only_o add_v that_o the_o time_n and_o year_n of_o this_o submission_n be_v mistake_v by_o our_o author_n who_o plâceth_v it_o in_o 1533._o whereas_o indeed_o the_o clergy_n make_v this_o acknowledgement_n and_o submission_n in_o their_o convocation_n anno_fw-la 1532._o though_o it_o pass_v not_o into_o a_o act_n or_o statute_n till_o the_o year_n next_o follow_v well_o then_o suppose_v the_o clergy_n call_v by_o the_o king_n authority_n and_o all_o their_o act_n and_o constitution_n ratify_v by_o the_o râyal_a assent_n be_v they_o of_o force_n to_o bind_v the_o subject_a to_o submit_v and_o conform_v unto_o they_o not_o if_o our_o author_n may_v be_v judge_n for_o he_o tell_v we_o plain_o fol._n 191._o that_o even_o such_o convocation_n with_o the_o royal_a assent_n subject_n not_o any_o for_o recusancy_n to_o obey_v their_o canon_n to_o a_o civil_a penalty_n in_o person_n or_o property_n until_o confirm_v by_o ãâã_d of_o parliament_n i_o marvel_v where_o our_o author_n take_v up_o this_o opinion_n which_o he_o neither_o find_v in_o the_o register_n of_o convocation_n or_o record_n of_o parliament_n himself_o have_v tell_v we_o fol._n 190._o that_o such_o canon_n and_o constitution_n as_o be_v conclude_v on_o in_o synod_n or_o convocation_n before_o the_o
altar_n as_o it_o either_o be_v or_o can_v be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o our_o english_a zealot_n to_o beat_v down_o superstitious_a picture_n and_o image_n have_v they_o be_v so_o mind_v solomon_n in_o the_o book_n of_o canticle_n compare_v the_o church_n unto_o a_o army_n acies_fw-la castrorum_fw-la ordinaâa_fw-la as_o the_o vulgar_a have_v it_o a_o army_n terrible_a with_o banner_n as_o our_o english_a read_v it_o a_o powerful_a body_n out_o of_o doubt_n able_a which_o way_n soever_o it_o move_v to_o waste_v and_o destroy_v the_o country_n to_o burn_v and_o sack_v the_o village_n through_o which_o it_o pass_v and_o questionless_a too_o many_o of_o the_o soldier_n know_v their_o own_o power_n world_n be_v apt_a to_o do_v it_o if_o not_o restrain_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o commander_n and_o the_o law_n of_o war_n 1._o ita_fw-la se_fw-la ducum_fw-la authoritas_fw-la sic_fw-la rigour_n disciplinae_fw-la habet_fw-la as_o we_o find_v in_o tacitus_n and_o if_o those_o be_v not_o keep_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v confusi_fw-la equites_fw-la peditesque_fw-la in_o exitium_fw-la ruunt_fw-la the_o whole_a run_v on_o to_o a_o swift_a destruction_n thus_o be_v it_o also_o in_o the_o church_n with_o the_o camp_n of_o god_n if_o there_o be_v no_o subordination_n in_o it_o if_o every_o one_o may_v do_v what_o he_o list_v himself_o and_o make_v such_o use_n of_o that_o power_n and_o opportunity_n as_o he_o think_v be_v put_v into_o into_o his_o hand_n what_o a_o confusion_n will_v ensue_v how_o speedy_a a_o calamity_n must_v needs_o fall_v upon_o it_o courage_n and_o zeal_n do_v never_o show_v more_o amiable_o in_o inferior_a power_n than_o when_o they_o be_v subordinate_a to_o good_a direction_n especial_o when_o they_o take_v direction_n from_o the_o right_a hand_n from_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n not_o from_o the_o interest_n and_o passion_n of_o their_o fellow_n subject_n it_o be_v the_o prince_n office_n to_o command_v and_o they_o to_o execute_v with_o which_o wise_a caution_n the_o emperor_n otho_n once_o repress_v the_o too_o great_a forwardness_n of_o his_o soldier_n when_o he_o find_v they_o apt_a enough_o to_o make_v use_n of_o their_o power_n in_o a_o matter_n not_o command_v by_o he_o vobis_fw-la arma_fw-la &_o animus_fw-la 1._o mihi_fw-la consilium_fw-la &_o virtutis_fw-la vestrae_fw-la regimen_fw-la relinquite_v as_o his_o word_n there_o be_v he_o understand_v their_o duty_n and_o his_o own_o authority_n allow_v they_o to_o have_v power_n and_o will_n but_o regulate_v and_o restrain_v they_o both_o to_o his_o own_o command_n so_o that_o whether_o we_o behold_v the_o church_n in_o its_o own_o condition_n proceed_v by_o the_o warrant_n and_o example_n of_o holy_a scripture_n or_o in_o resemblance_n to_o a_o army_n as_o compare_v by_o solomon_n there_o will_v be_v nothing_o leave_v to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o people_n either_o in_o way_n of_o reformation_n or_o execution_n till_o they_o be_v vest_v and_o entrust_v with_o ãâã_d lawful_a power_n derive_v from_o he_o who_o god_n have_v place_v in_o authority_n over_o they_o and_o therefore_o though_o idolatry_n be_v to_o be_v destroy_v and_o to_o be_v destroy_v by_o all_o which_o have_v power_n to_o do_v it_o yet_o must_v all_o those_o be_v furnish_v with_o ãâã_d lawful_a power_n or_o otherwise_o stand_v guilty_a of_o as_o high_a a_o crime_n as_o that_o which_o they_o so_o zealous_o endeavour_v to_o condemn_v in_o other_o 3._o but_o our_o author_n be_v not_o of_o this_o mind_n and_o therefore_o add_v that_o if_o the_o sovereign_n do_v forget_v the_o subject_n shall_v remember_v their_o duty_n a_o lesson_n which_o he_o never_o learn_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n for_o beside_o the_o example_n which_o we_o have_v in_o demolish_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o the_o altar_n of_o bethel_n not_o act_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o people_n but_o the_o command_n of_o the_o prince_n i_o will_v ãâã_d know_v where_o we_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o whole_a courâe_n and_o current_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n that_o the_o common_a people_n in_o and_o by_o their_o own_o authority_n remove_v the_o high_a place_n and_o destroy_v the_o image_n or_o cut_v down_o the_o gâoves_n those_o excellent_a instrument_n of_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n or_o that_o they_o do_v attempt_v any_o such_o thing_n till_o warrant_v and_o commissionated_a by_o the_o supreme_a power_n where_o shall_v we_o find_v that_o any_o of_o the_o seven_o thousand_o person_n which_o have_v not_o bow_v the_o knee_n to_o baal_n do_v ever_o go_v about_o to_o destroy_v that_o idol_n or_o that_o eliah_n or_o elisha_n two_o man_n as_o extraordinary_a for_o their_o call_n as_o their_o zeal_n and_o courage_n do_v excite_v they_o to_o it_o where_o shall_v we_o find_v the_o primitive_a christian_n when_o live_v under_o the_o command_n of_o heathenish_a emperor_n busy_v in_o destroy_a idol_n or_o deface_v the_o temple_n of_o those_o god_n who_o the_o pagan_n worship_v thoâgh_v grow_v in_o those_o time_n to_o such_o infinite_a multitude_n that_o they_o fill_v all_o place_n of_o the_o empire_n &_o vestra_fw-la omne_fw-la implevimââ_n city_n ill_n castle_n burrough_n your_o place_n of_o assembly_n camp_n tribe_n palace_n yea_o the_o very_a senate_n and_o common_a forum_n as_o tertullian_n plead_v it_o no_o other_o doctrine_n ãâã_d âeard_v of_o till_o either_o the_o new_a gospel_n of_o wickliff_n or_o the_o new_a light_n shine_v from_o geneva_n give_v beginning_n to_o it_o when_o the_o genevian_o be_v resolve_v on_o a_o reformation_n and_o can_v not_o get_v the_o consent_n of_o their_o bishop_n who_o be_v also_o their_o immediate_a prince_n they_o resolve_v to_o take_v the_o work_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n and_o proceed_v without_o he_o and_o that_o the_o presence_n of_o their_o bishop_n may_v not_o be_v a_o hindrance_n unto_o their_o design_n they_o raise_v a_o tumult_n put_v themselves_o in_o to_o a_o posture_n of_o war_n and_o thereby_o force_v he_o and_o his_o clergy_n to_o forsake_v the_o city_n and_o this_o be_v do_v they_o do_v not_o only_a order_n matter_n of_o religion_n as_o they_o please_v themselves_o but_o take_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o city_n into_o their_o own_o hand_n change_v the_o government_n thereof_o to_o the_o form_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n eo_fw-la ejecto_fw-la genevate_v monarchiam_fw-la in_o popularem_fw-la statum_n commutarunt_fw-la as_o calvin_n have_v it_o in_o his_o epistle_n unto_o cardinal_n sadolet_n the_o practice_n of_o these_o man_n draw_v afterward_o into_o example_n by_o knox_n and_o other_o become_v at_o last_o to_o be_v the_o stand_a rule_n and_o measure_n of_o all_o reformation_n for_o when_o the_o king_n and_o queen_n of_o scot_n refuse_v to_o ratify_v two_o act_n which_o be_v send_v unto_o they_o concern_v the_o abolish_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n 25._o knox_n winram_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o gang_n without_o more_o ado_n devise_v and_o set_v up_o a_o new_a form_n of_o discipline_n engross_a that_o power_n unto_o the_o kirk_n which_o former_o have_v be_v usurp_v by_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n afterward_o when_o the_o queen_n be_v return_v into_o scotland_n and_o that_o some_o of_o their_o importunate_a petition_n be_v neglect_v by_o she_o it_o be_v conclude_v by_o the_o minister_n in_o as_o plain_a term_n as_o may_v be_v that_o if_o the_o queen_n will_v not_o than_o we_o must_v ibid._n fol._n 33._o according_a to_o this_o rule_n the_o netherlands_o proceed_v also_o not_o only_o drive_v on_o the_o design_n which_o they_o have_v in_o hand_n as_o the_o french_a hugonot_n also_o do_v without_o the_o king_n authority_n but_o against_o it_o also_o final_o from_o a_o matter_n practical_a it_o come_v at_o last_o to_o be_v deliver_v for_o a_o point_n of_o doctrine_n that_o if_o the_o prince_n or_o supreme_a magistrate_n do_v not_o reform_v the_o church_n than_o the_o people_n may_v for_o this_o i_o find_v in_o clesselius_fw-la one_o of_o the_o contra-remonstrants_a of_o rotterdam_n if_o say_v he_o the_o prince_n and_o clergy_n do_v neglect_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o reform_n of_o the_o church_n necesse_fw-la est_fw-la tumid_a facere_fw-la plebeios_fw-la israelitas_fw-la that_o then_o it_o do_v belong_v to_o the_o common_a people_n and_o it_o be_v with_o a_o necesse_fw-la too_o if_o you_o mark_v it_o well_o they_o may_v not_o only_o do_v it_o but_o they_o must_v be_v do_v not_o in_o the_o way_n of_o mediation_n or_o petition_n by_o which_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o magistrate_n may_v be_v preserve_v but_o by_o force_n and_o violence_n licet_fw-la ad_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la usque_fw-la pro_fw-la eo_fw-la pugnent_fw-la even_o to_o the_o shed_n of_o their_o own_o blood_n and_o their_o brethren_n too_o our_o author_n preach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n whether_o by_o way_n of_o application_n or_o instruction_n it_o come_v all_o to_o one_o for_o qui_fw-fr parent_n laudat_fw-la filios_fw-la provocat_n as_o
on_o their_o ãâ¦ã_z our_o author_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o brerewood_n upon_o a_o diligent_a enquiry_n have_v find_v it_o otherwise_o then_o our_o author_n do_v let_v we_o know_v that_o the_o first_o country_n in_o christendom_n whence_o the_o jew_n be_v expel_v without_o hope_n of_o return_n 13._o be_v our_o country_n of_o england_n whence_o they_o be_v banish_v anno_fw-la 1290._o by_o king_n edward_n the_o first_o and_o not_o long_o after_o out_o of_o france_n anno_fw-la 1307._o by_o phiâippus_n pulcher._n not_o out_o of_o france_n first_o out_o of_o england_n afterward_o as_o our_o author_n will_v have_v it_o fol._n 100_o thus_o man_n of_o yesterday_o have_v pride_n too_o much_o to_o remember_v what_o they_o be_v the_o day_n before_o a_o observation_n true_a enough_o but_o not_o well_o apply_v the_o two_o spenâârs_n who_o he_o speak_v this_o of_o be_v not_o man_n of_o yesterday_o or_o raise_v out_o of_o the_o dirt_n or_o dunghill_n to_o so_o great_a a_o height_n monmouthsh_n but_o of_o as_o old_a and_o know_a nobility_n as_o the_o best_a in_o england_n insomuch_o that_o when_o a_o question_n grow_v in_o parliament_n whether_o the_o baroness_n de_fw-fr spencer_n or_o the_o lord_n of_o aburgaveny_n be_v to_o have_v precedency_n it_o be_v adjudge_v unto_o de_fw-fr spencer_n thereby_o declare_v the_o ancient_a barony_n of_o the_o kingdom_n at_o that_o time_n then_o be_v these_o two_o spencer_n hugh_n the_o father_n be_v create_v earl_n of_o winchester_n for_o term_n of_o life_n and_o hugh_n the_o son_n by_o marry_v one_o of_o the_o daughter_n and_o coheir_n of_o gilbert_n dt_v clâre_o become_v earl_n of_o gloster_n man_n more_o to_o be_v commend_v for_o their_o loyalty_n then_o accuse_v for_o their_o pride_n but_o that_o the_o king_n be_v now_o decline_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v hold_v fit_a by_o the_o prevalent_a faction_n to_o take_v his_o two_o supporter_n from_o he_o as_o they_o after_o do_v fol._n 113._o the_o lord_n chancellor_n be_v ever_o a_o bishop_n if_o our_o author_n by_o this_o word_n ever_o understand_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d most_o common_o or_o for_o the_o most_o part_n he_o be_v right_a enough_o but_o than_o it_o will_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o follow_a word_n viz._n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v against_o equity_n to_o employ_v any_o other_o ãâã_d ãâ¦ã_z he_o take_v the_o word_n ever_o in_o its_o proper_a and_o more_o natural_a sense_n as_o if_o none_o but_o bishop_n have_v ever_o be_v advance_v unto_o that_o office_n he_o do_v not_o only_o misinform_v the_o reader_n but_o confute_v himself_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o fol._n 31._o of_o this_o present_a book_n that_o thomas_n becket_n be_v then_o but_o archdeacon_n of_o canterbury_n be_v make_v lord_n chancellor_n and_o that_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v make_v archbishop_n he_o resign_v that_o office_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o not_o only_a man_n in_o holy_a order_n but_o many_o of_o the_o laity_n also_o have_v attain_v that_o dignity_n as_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o who_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o ãâã_d the_o catalogue_n of_o the_o chancellor_n and_o ãâã_d of_o the_o grâat_a seal_n in_o the_o glossary_a of_o sir_n henry_n ãâã_d in_o which_o appear_v not_o only_o some_o of_o inferior_a dignity_n as_o dean_n archdeacon_n household_n chaplain_n but_o many_o also_o not_o dignify_v with_o any_o ecclesiastical_a ââââor_a notification_n and_o therefore_o in_o all_o probability_n to_o be_v look_v on_o as_o mere_a layman_n counsellor_n and_o servant_n to_o the_o king_n in_o who_o time_n they_o live_v or_o otherwise_o study_v in_o the_o law_n and_o of_o good_a affection_n and_o consequent_o capable_a of_o the_o place_n of_o such_o trust_n and_o power_n fol._n 116._o this_o yearâ_n viz._n 1350._o as_o author_n general_o agree_v king_n edward_n institute_v be_v order_n of_o the_o garter_n right_o enough_o as_o unto_o the_o time_n but_o much_o mistake_v in_o some_o thing_n which_o relate_v unto_o that_o ancient_a and_o most_o noble_a order_n our_o author_n take_v up_o his_o commodity_n at_o the_o second_o hand_n neither_o consult_v the_o record_n noâ_n deal_v in_o this_o business_n with_o man_n of_o credit_n for_o first_o there_o be_v not_o ãâã_d canon_n resident_a in_o the_o church_n of_o winâor_n but_o thirteen_o only_a with_o the_o dean_n it_o be_v king_n edward_n purpose_n when_o he_o found_v that_o oâdeâ_n consist_v of_o twenty_o ãâã_d knight_n himself_o be_v one_o to_o ãâã_d as_o many_o great_a and_o lesser_a canon_n and_o as_o many_o old_a soldier_n common_o call_v poor_a knights_n to_o be_v pension_v there_o though_o in_o this_o last_o the_o number_n be_v ãâ¦ã_z up_o to_o his_o first_o intention_n he_o tell_v we_o second_o that_o if_o he_o be_v not_o mistake_v as_o indeed_o he_o be_v sir_n thomas_n row_n be_v the_o last_o chancellor_n of_o the_o order_n whereas_o sir_n james_n palmer_n one_o of_o the_o gentleman_n usher_n of_o the_o privy_a chamber_n succeed_v he_o in_o the_o place_n of_o chancellor_n after_o his_o decease_n anno_fw-la 1644._o he_o tell_v we_o three_o that_o there_o belong_v unto_o it_o one_o register_n be_v always_o the_o dean_n of_o windsor_n which_o be_v nothing_o so_o for_o though_o the_o dean_n of_o late_a time_n have_v be_v register_n also_o yet_o ab_fw-la initio_fw-la non_fw-la suis_fw-la sic_fw-la it_o be_v not_o so_o from_o the_o beginning_n the_o first_o dean_n who_o be_v also_o register_n be_v john_n boxul_fw-la anno_fw-la 1557._o before_o which_o time_n begin_v at_o the_o year_n 1414._o there_o have_v be_v nine_o register_n which_o be_v not_o dean_n but_o how_o many_o more_o before_o that_o time_n i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o say_v their_o name_n not_o be_v on_o record_n and_o soââthly_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o garter_n be_v one_o of_o the_o extraordinary_a habiliment_n of_o the_o knight_n of_o this_o order_n their_o ordinary_a be_v only_o the_o blue_a ribbon_n about_o their_o neck_n with_o the_o picture_n of_o st._n george_n appendant_a and_o the_o sun_n in_o his_o glory_n on_o the_o left_a shoulder_n of_o their_o cloak_n whereas_o indeed_o the_o garter_n be_v of_o common_a wear_n and_o of_o such_o necessary_a use_n that_o the_o knight_n be_v not_o to_o be_v see_v abroad_o without_o it_o 8._o upon_o pain_n of_o pay_v two_o crown_n to_o any_o officer_n of_o the_o order_n who_o shall_v first_o claim_v it_o unless_o they_o be_v to_o take_v a_o journey_n in_o which_o case_n it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o wear_v a_o blue_a ribbon_n under_o their_o boot_n to_o denote_v the_o garter_n last_o whereas_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o knight_n hereof_o do_v wear_v on_o the_o left_a shoulder_n of_o their_o cloak_n a_o sun_n in_o his_o glory_n and_o attribute_n this_o wear_n as_o some_o say_v to_z king_n charles_n i_o will_v first_o put_v he_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o this_o addition_n be_v king_n charles_n his_o then_o show_v he_o his_o mistake_n in_o the_o matter_n itself_o and_o first_o in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o that_o king_n ap._n 26_o 1626._o it_o be_v thus_o enact_v at_o a_o public_a chapter_n of_o the_o oâder_n viz._n that_o all_o knight_n and_o companion_n of_o the_o order_n shall_v wear_v upon_o the_o left_a part_n of_o their_o cloak_n coat_n and_o ride_v cassock_n at_o all_o time_n when_o they_o shall_v not_o wear_v their_o robe_n and_o in_o all_o place_n of_o assembly_n a_o escocheon_n of_o the_o arm_n of_o st._n george_n id_fw-la est_fw-la a_o cross_n within_o a_o garter_n not_o enrich_v with_o pearl_n or_o stone_n in_o token_n of_o the_o honour_n which_o they_o hold_v from_o the_o say_v most_o noble_a order_n institute_v and_o ordain_v for_o person_n of_o the_o high_a worth_n and_o honour_n our_o author_n second_o may_v perceive_v by_o this_o act_n of_o the_o king_n that_o st._n george_n cross_n within_o the_o garter_n be_v the_o main_a device_n enjoin_v to_o be_v wear_v by_o all_o the_o knight_n of_o that_o noble_a order_n to_o which_o the_o add_v of_o the_o sun_n in_o his_o glory_n serve_v but_o for_o ornament_n and_o imbellish_v and_o may_v be_v either_o use_v or_o not_o use_v but_o only_o for_o conformity_n sake_n as_o they_o will_v themselves_o so_o many_o error_n in_o so_o few_o line_n one_o shall_v hardly_o meet_v with_o the_o four_o book_n from_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o wickliff_n to_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o our_o author_n begin_v this_o book_n with_o the_o story_n of_o wickliff_n and_o continue_v it_o in_o relate_v the_o success_n of_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n to_o which_o he_o seem_v so_o much_o addict_v as_o to_o christen_v their_o opinion_n by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o gospel_n for_o speak_v of_o such_o encouragement_n and_o help_n as_o be_v give_v to_o wickliff_n by_o the_o duke_n of_o lancaster_n with_o other_o advantage_n which_o
resolve_v to_o join_v they_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o member_n friar_n monk_n and_o cardinal_n and_o our_o author_n be_v a_o great_a favourer_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o must_v not_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o scandal_n especial_o consider_v that_o papacy_n and_o praelacy_n be_v join_v together_o in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o present_a time_n and_o therefore_o fit_a to_o go_v together_o in_o this_o annotation_n fol._n 68_o in_o this_o parliament_n dr._n harsnet_n bishop_n of_o chichester_n give_v offence_n in_o a_o sermon_n preach_v at_o court_n press_v the_o word_n reddite_fw-la caesari_n quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la caesaris_fw-la as_o if_o all_o that_o be_v levy_v by_o subsidy_n or_o pay_v by_o custom_n to_o the_o crown_n be_v but_o a_o redditum_fw-la of_o what_o be_v the_o king_n before_o this_o parliament_n be_v placââ_n by_o our_o author_n in_o the_o year_n 1613._o but_o ãâã_d parliament_n in_o the_o sit_v whereof_o bishop_n haâââet_v ãâã_d the_o sermon_n above_o mention_v be_v hold_v by_o prorogation_n in_o the_o year_n 1609._o and_o afterward_o dissolve_v by_o proclamation_n in_o december_n of_o the_o year_n next_o follow_v concern_v which_o sermon_n king_n james_n give_v this_o account_n to_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o assemble_v before_o he_o at_o whitehall_n march_v 23._o and_o therefore_o sâith_o he_o that_o reverend_a bâshop_n here_o among_o you_o though_o i_o hear_v by_o divers_a he_o be_v mistake_v or_o not_o well_o understand_v yet_o do_v he_o preach_v both_o learned_o and_o ãâã_d ancient_a this_o point_n concern_v the_o power_n oâ_n a_o king_n for_o what_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o king_n power_n in_o abstracto_fw-la be_v most_o true_a in_o divinity_n for_o to_o emperor_n or_o king_n that_o be_v monarch_n their_o subject_n body_n and_o good_n be_v due_a for_o their_o defence_n and_o maintenance_n but_o if_o i_o have_v be_v in_o his_o place_n i_o will_v only_o have_v add_v two_o word_n which_o will_v have_v clear_v all_o for_o after_o i_o have_v tell_v as_o a_o divine_a what_o be_v due_a by_o the_o subject_n to_o their_o king_n in_o general_a i_o will_v then_o have_v conclude_v as_o a_o english_a man_n show_v this_o people_n that_o as_o in_o general_a all_o subject_n be_v bind_v to_o relieve_v their_o king_n so_o to_o exhort_v they_o that_o as_o we_o live_v in_o a_o settle_a state_n of_o a_o kingdom_n that_o be_v govern_v by_o his_o own_o fundamental_a law_n and_o order_n that_o according_a thereunto_o they_o be_v now_o be_v assemble_v for_o this_o purpose_n in_o parliament_n to_o consider_v how_o to_o help_v such_o a_o king_n as_o now_o they_o have_v and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a form_n and_o order_n establish_v in_o this_o kingdom_n put_v so_o a_o difference_n between_o the_o general_a power_n of_o a_o king_n in_o divinity_n and_o the_o settle_a and_o establish_a state_n of_o this_o crown_n and_o kingdom_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o the_o bishop_n mean_v to_o have_v have_v do_v the_o same_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v straiten_v by_o time_n which_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o present_a preach_v before_o we_o and_o such_o a_o auditory_a he_o dare_v not_o presume_v upon_o ãâã_d that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v thus_o justify_v and_o explain_v by_o king_n james_n and_o the_o parliament_n continue_v undissolved_a till_o december_n follow_v we_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o parliament_n be_v dissolve_v upon_o this_o occasion_n and_o much_o less_o on_o the_o occasion_n of_o some_o word_n speak_v in_o that_o parliament_n by_o bishop_n ãâã_d of_o which_o thus_o our_o author_n ibid._n likewise_o dr._n neile_n bishop_n of_o rochester_n utter_v word_n in_o the_o house_n of_o lord_n interpret_v to_o the_o disparagement_n of_o some_o repute_a zealous_a patriot_n in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o â_o in_o this_o passage_n i_o have_v many_o thing_n to_o except_v against_o as_o 1._o that_o this_o patriot_n be_v not_o name_v to_o whoâe_v disparagement_n the_o word_n be_v pretend_v to_o be_v utter_v and_o 2._o that_o the_o word_n themselves_o be_v not_o here_o lay_v down_o and_o yet_o be_v make_v to_o be_v so_o heinous_o take_v that_o to_o sâve_v the_o bishop_n from_o the_o storm_n which_o be_v come_v âowards_n he_o the_o king_n shall_v principal_o be_v occasion_v to_o dissolve_v that_o parliament_n 3._o that_o dr._n neile_n be_v here_o call_v bishop_n of_o rochester_n who_o twice_o before_o viz._n sel._n 64._o &_o 67._o he_o make_v to_o be_v bishop_n of_o coventry_n and_o leiâhfield_n and_o 4._o that_o the_o word_n here_o intimate_v shall_v be_v speak_v in_o parliament_n anno_fw-la 1613._o whereas_o by_o give_v dr._n neile_n the_o title_n of_o rochester_n it_o shall_v rather_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o parliament_n hold_v by_o prorogation_n till_o the_o last_o of_o december_n anno_fw-la 1610._o when_o it_o be_v dissolve_v and_o then_o dissolve_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o king_n proclamation_n for_o not_o supply_v his_o necessity_n and_o other_o reason_n there_o express_v whereof_o this_o be_v none_o fol._n 70._o some_o conceive_v that_o in_o revenge_n mr._n john_n selden_n soon_o after_o set_v forth_o his_o book_n of_o tithe_n wherein_o he_o historical_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v payable_a jure_fw-la humano_fw-la and_o not_o otherwise_o whether_o the_o act_n of_o the_o comedy_n call_v ignoramus_n may_v move_v mr._n selden_n at_o the_o first_o to_o take_v this_o revenge_n i_o inquire_v not_o here_o though_o it_o be_v probable_a it_o may_v that_o comedy_n be_v act_v before_o king_n james_n anno_fw-la 1614_o and_o this_o book_n come_v out_o about_o two_o year_n after_o anno_fw-la 1616._o but_o here_o i_o shall_v observe_v in_o the_o first_o place_n our_o author_n partiality_n in_o tell_v we_o that_o mr._n selden_n in_o that_o book_n have_v prove_v historical_o that_o tithe_n be_v payable_a ãâã_d humano_fw-la and_o not_o otherwise_o whereas_o indeed_o he_o undertake_v to_o prove_v that_o point_n but_o prove_v it_o not_o as_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o which_o have_v read_v the_o answer_n set_v out_o against_o he_o i_o observe_v second_o our_o author_n ignorance_n in_o the_o book_n itself_o tell_v we_o within_o few_o line_n after_o that_o the_o first_o part_n of_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a jew_n of_o the_o practice_n of_o tithing_n among_o the_o hebrew_n the_o second_o a_o christian_a and_o chief_o a_o english_a man_n whereas_o indeed_o that_o part_n thereof_o which_o precede_v the_o manner_n of_o tithing_n among_o christian_n have_v as_o much_o of_o the_o gentil_n as_o of_o the_o jew_n as_o much_o time_n spend_v upon_o examine_v of_o the_o tithe_n pay_v by_o the_o greek_n and_o roman_n as_o be_v in_o that_o among_o the_o hebrew_n three_o i_o must_v observe_v the_o prejudice_n which_o he_o have_v put_v upon_o the_o cause_n by_o tell_v we_o in_o the_o next_o place_n that_o though_o many_o divine_n undertake_v the_o answer_n of_o that_o book_n yet_o sure_o it_o be_v that_o never_o a_o fierce_a storm_n fall_v on_o all_o parsonage_n barn_n since_o the_o reformation_n than_o what_o this_o treatise_n raise_v up_o and_o so_o our_o author_n leave_v this_o matter_n without_o more_o ado_n tell_v we_o of_o the_o church_n danger_n but_o not_o acquaint_v we_o at_o all_o with_o her_o deliverance_n from_o the_o present_a storm_n neither_o so_o violent_a not_o so_o great_a nor_o of_o such_o continuance_n as_o to_o blow_v off_o any_o one_o tile_n or_o to_o blow_v aside_o so_o much_o as_o one_o load_n of_o corn_n from_o any_o parsonage_n barn_n in_o england_n for_o though_o this_o history_n give_v some_o country_n gentleman_n occasion_n and_o matter_n of_o discourse_n against_o pay_v tithe_n yet_o it_o give_v none_o of_o they_o the_o audaciousness_n to_o deny_v the_o payment_n so_o safe_a and_o speedy_a a_o course_n be_v take_v to_o prevent_v the_o mischief_n which_o since_o our_o author_n have_v not_o tell_v we_o as_o have_v he_o play_v the_o part_n of_o a_o good_a historian_n he_o be_v bind_v to_o do_v i_o will_v do_v it_o for_o he_o no_o soon_o be_v the_o church_n patrimony_n thus_o call_v in_o question_n but_o it_o please_v god_n to_o stir_v up_o some_o industrious_a and_o learned_a man_n to_o undertake_v the_o answer_n of_o that_o history_n which_o at_o the_o first_o make_v so_o much_o noise_n among_o the_o people_n dr._n tilles_o archdeacon_n of_o rochester_n first_o appear_v in_o the_o list_n manage_v that_o part_n of_o the_o controversy_n which_o our_o author_n call_v a_o christian_n and_o a_o englishman_n relate_v to_o old_a chartulary_n and_o infeodation_n the_o three_o first_o chapter_n which_o dr._n tilles_o have_v omit_v concern_v the_o payment_n of_o tithe_n by_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v solid_o but_o very_o smart_o examine_v and_o confute_v by_o mr._n mântague_n at_o that_o time_n fellow_n of_o eton_n college_n and_o afterward_o lord_n
but_o that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v obtain_v by_o this_o check_v of_o the_o commons_o in_o the_o decline_a and_o last_v time_n of_o king_n edw._n 3._o be_v in_o some_o part_n effect_v by_o the_o more_o vigorous_a prosecution_n of_o king_n hen._n 8._o who_o to_o satisfy_v the_o desire_n of_o the_o commons_o in_o this_o particular_a and_o repress_v their_o checking_n obtain_v from_o the_o clergy_n that_o they_o shall_v neither_o make_v nor_o execute_v any_o canon_n without_o his_o consent_n as_o before_o be_v say_v so_o that_o the_o king_n power_n of_o confirm_v canon_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o free_a and_o voluntary_a submission_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o be_v not_o build_v as_o the_o three_o argument_n object_v on_o to_o weak_a a_o foundation_n as_o the_o pope_n make_v canon_n by_o his_o sole_a power_n the_o pope_n not_o make_v canon_n here_o nor_o put_v his_o rescript_n and_o letter_n decretory_n in_o the_o place_n of_o canon_n but_o only_o as_o a_o remedy_n for_o some_o present_a exigency_n so_o that_o the_o king_n power_n in_o this_o particular_a not_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o pope_n as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v it_o may_v well_o stand_v that_o king_n may_v make_v canon_n without_o consent_n of_o parliament_n though_o he_o say_v they_o can_v but_o whereas_o it_o be_v argue_v in_o the_o four_o place_n that_o the_o clause_n in_o the_o statute_n of_o submission_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o clergy_n shall_v not_o make_v canon_n without_o the_o king_n leave_n do_v not_o imply_v that_o by_o his_o leave_n alone_o they_o may_v make_v they_o i_o can_v think_v that_o he_o deliver_v this_o for_o law_n and_o much_o less_o for_o logic_n for_o have_v this_o be_v look_v on_o former_o as_o a_o piece_n of_o law_n the_o parliament_n will_v have_v check_v at_o it_o at_o some_o time_n or_o other_o and_o be_v as_o sensible_a of_o the_o king_n encroachment_n in_o execute_v this_o power_n without_o they_o as_o ancient_o some_o of_o they_o have_v be_v about_o the_o disuse_n of_o the_o like_a general_a consent_n in_o the_o make_n of_o they_o fol._n 180._o in_o the_o next_o place_n our_o author_n tell_v we_o that_o mr._n maynard_n endeavour_v also_o to_o prove_v that_o these_o canon_n be_v against_o the_o king_n prerogative_n the_o right_n liberty_n and_o property_n of_o the_o subject_a and_o he_o say_v well_o thât_v it_o be_v endeavour_v to_o be_v prove_v and_o endeavour_v only_o nothing_o amount_v to_o a_o proof_n be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o which_o follow_v it_o have_v before_o be_v vote_v by_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o that_o the_o commons_o be_v against_o fundamental_a law_n of_o this_o realm_n 208._o against_o the_o king_n prerogative_n propâââ_n of_o the_o subject_a the_o right_a of_o parliament_n and_o do_v tend_v to_o faction_n and_o sedition_n and_o it_o be_v fit_a that_o some_o endeavour_n shall_v be_v use_v to_o make_v good_a the_o vote_n but_o this_o be_v but_o a_o general_a charge_n require_v a_o general_a answer_n only_o and_o it_o shall_v be_v this_o before_o the_o canon_n weâe_v subscribe_v they_o be_v impart_v to_o the_o king_n by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o by_o the_o king_n communicate_v to_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o council_n who_o call_v to_o they_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o some_o of_o the_o king_n council_n learn_v in_o the_o law_n of_o this_o realm_n cause_v the_o say_v canon_n to_o be_v read_v and_o consider_v of_o the_o king_n be_v then_o present_a by_o all_o which_o upon_o due_a and_o mature_a deliberation_n the_o canon_n be_v approve_v and_o be_v so_o approve_v be_v send_v back_o to_o the_o clergy_n in_o the_o convocation_n and_o by_o they_o subscribe_v and_o certain_o it_o have_v be_v strange_a that_o they_o shall_v pass_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o judge_n and_o learned_a lawyer_n have_v they_o contain_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o fundamental_a law_n of_o the_o land_n the_o property_n of_o the_o subject_a and_o the_o right_n of_o parliament_n or_o be_v approve_v of_o by_o the_o lord_n of_o his_o majesty_n conncel_n have_v any_o thing_n be_v contain_v in_o they_o derogatory_n to_o the_o king_n prerogative_n or_o tend_v to_o faction_n and_o sedition_n so_o that_o the_o foundation_n be_v ill_o lay_v the_o superstructure_n and_o objection_n which_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o shake_v and_o throw_v down_o to_o the_o first_o therefore_o it_o be_v answer_v that_o nothing_o have_v be_v more_o ordinary_a in_o all_o former_a time_n then_o for_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n to_o inflict_v penalty_n on_o such_o as_o shall_v disobey_v they_o exemplify_v in_o the_o late_a canon_n of_o 603._o many_o of_o which_o extend_v not_o only_o unto_o excommunication_n but_o even_o to_o degradation_n and_o irregularity_n for_o which_o see_n can._n 38._o 113._o etc._n etc._n to_o the_o second_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o those_o canon_n which_o determine_v or_o limit_v the_o king_n authority_n but_o much_o that_o make_v for_o and_o defend_v the_o right_a of_o the_o subject_a for_o which_o the_o convocation_n may_v rather_o have_v expect_v thanks_o then_o censure_v from_o ensue_a parliament_n to_o the_o three_o that_o when_o the_o canon_n do_v declare_v the_o government_n of_o king_n to_o be_v found_v on_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n it_o be_v not_o to_o condemn_v all_o other_o government_n as_o be_v unlawful_a but_o to_o commend_v that_o of_o king_n as_o be_v the_o best_a nor_o can_v it_o logical_o be_v infer_v that_o because_o the_o kingly_a government_n be_v not_o receive_v in_o all_o place_n that_o therefore_o it_o ought_v not_o so_o to_o be_v or_o that_o the_o government_n by_o this_o canon_n shall_v be_v the_o same_o in_o all_o place_n and_o in_o all_o alike_o because_o some_o king_n do_v and_o may_v lawful_o pât_v with_o many_o of_o ãâã_d right_n for_o the_o good_a of_o their_o subject_n which_o other_o do_v ãâã_d may_v as_o lawful_o retain_v unto_o themselves_o âo_o the_o four_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o nonresistance_n be_v ãâ¦ã_z the_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n rom._n ãâ¦ã_z condemn_v the_o canon_n in_o that_o behalf_n ãâ¦ã_z word_n of_o god_n upon_o which_o it_o be_v ãâ¦ã_z five_o and_o last_o that_o the_o statute_n ãâ¦ã_z that_o the_o day_n there_o mantione_n ãâ¦ã_z day_n and_o no_o other_o relâtes_v only_o to_o the_o ãâ¦ã_z some_o other_o festival_n whiâh_n have_v be_v former_o ãâ¦ã_z in_o the_o realm_n of_o england_n and_o not_o to_o the_o ãâ¦ã_z church_n from_o ordain_v any_o other_o holy_a ãâ¦ã_z cause_n in_o the_o time_n to_o come_v assure_o ãâ¦ã_z lawyer_n will_v have_v speak_v more_o home_n ãâ¦ã_z can_v the_o cause_n have_v bear_v it_o floquentâm_o ãâ¦ã_z in_o the_o orator_n language_n and_o therefore_o ãâ¦ã_z on_o the_o head_n of_o the_o argument_n âs_v our_o ãâ¦ã_z they_o to_o we_o i_o must_v needs_o think_v that_o they_o be_v ãâã_d fit_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o house_n than_o they_o be_v ãâ¦ã_z own_o what_o influence_n these_o argument_n may_v have_v on_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n when_o report_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o ãâã_d i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o affirm_v but_o âo_o far_o i_o ãâ¦ã_z our_o author_n that_o they_o lose_v neither_o ãâ¦ã_z come_v from_o his_o moâth_n who_o as_o our_o author_n say_v ãâã_d back_o friend_n to_o the_o canon_n because_o make_a ãâ¦ã_z and_o durance_n in_o the_o tower_n a_o piece_n of_o ãâ¦ã_z i_o do_v not_o look_v for_o the_o power_n of_o ãâ¦ã_z thus_o shake_v and_o endanger_v that_o of_o ãâ¦ã_z and_o the_o bishop_n court_n be_v not_o ãâ¦ã_z one_o be_v take_v away_o by_o act_n of_o ãâ¦ã_z other_o much_o weaken_v in_o the_o ãâ¦ã_z a_o clause_n in_o that_o act_n of_o which_o ãâ¦ã_z fol._n 182._o mr._n ãâ¦ã_z shall_v so_o supine_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v surprise_v in_o their_o power_n and_o well_o may_v mr._n pim_n triumph_n as_o have_v gain_v the_o point_n he_o aim_v at_o in_o subvert_v the_o coercive_a power_n and_o consequent_o the_o whole_a exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n but_o he_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o impute_v it_o to_o the_o âinger_n of_o god_n or_o to_o the_o carelessness_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o suffer_v themselves_o to_o be_v so_o supine_o surprise_v for_o first_o âe_v bishop_n see_v too_o plain_o that_o those_o general_a word_n by_o which_o they_o be_v disable_v from_o inflict_v any_o pain_n or_o penalty_n will_v be_v extend_v to_o suspension_n excommunication_n and_o other_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n but_o second_o they_o see_v withal_o that_o the_o stream_n be_v too_o strong_a for_o they_o to_o âive_a against_o most_o of_o the_o lord_n be_v wrought_v on_o by_o the_o popular_a party_n in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o to_o pass_v the_o bill_n three_o they_o be_v not_o without_o hope_n that_o when_o the_o scot_n aâmy_n be_v disband_v
religious_a predecessor_n and_o namely_o the_o law_n custom_n and_o franchise_n grant_v to_o the_o clergy_n by_o the_o glorious_a king_n st._n edward_n your_o predecessor_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o true_a profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n establish_v in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o prerogative_n of_o the_o king_n thereof_o and_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o this_o land_n the_o king_n answer_v i_o grant_v and_o promise_v to_o keep_v they_o archbishop_n sir_n will_v you_o keep_v peace_n and_o godly_a agreement_n entire_o according_a to_o your_o power_n both_o to_o god_n the_o holy_a church_n the_o clergy_n and_o the_o people_n rex_fw-la i_o will_v keep_v it_o archbishop_n sir_n will_v you_o to_o your_o power_n cause_n justice_n law_n and_o discretion_n in_o mercy_n and_o truth_n to_o be_v execute_v in_o all_o your_o judgement_n rex_fw-la i_o will_v archbishop_n sir_n will_v you_o grant_v to_o hold_v and_o keep_v the_o law_n and_o rightful_a custom_n which_o the_o commonalty_n of_o this_o your_o kingdom_n have_v and_o will_v you_o defend_v and_o uphold_v they_o to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n so_o much_o as_o in_o you_o lie_v rex_fw-la i_o grant_v and_o promise_v so_o to_o do_v then_o one_o of_o the_o bishop_n read_v this_o admonition_n to_o the_o king_n before_o the_o people_n with_o a_o loud_a voice_n our_o lord_n and_o king_n we_o beseech_v you_o to_o pardon_v and_o to_o grant_v and_o to_o preserve_v unto_o we_o and_o to_o the_o church_n commit_v to_o our_o charge_n all_o canonical_a privilege_n and_o due_a law_n and_o justice_n and_o that_o you_o will_v protect_v and_o defend_v we_o as_o every_o good_a king_n in_o his_o kingdom_n ought_v to_o be_v a_o protector_n and_o defender_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o church_n under_o their_o government_n the_o king_n answer_v with_o a_o willing_a and_o devout_a heart_n i_o promise_v and_o grant_v my_o pardon_n and_o that_o i_o will_v preserve_v and_o maintain_v to_o you_o and_o the_o church_n commit_v to_o your_o charge_n all_o canonical_a privilege_n and_o due_a law_n and_o justice_n and_o that_o i_o will_v be_v your_o protector_n and_o defender_n to_o my_o power_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n as_o every_o good_a king_n ought_v in_o his_o kingdom_n in_o right_a to_o protect_v and_o defend_v the_o bishop_n and_o church_n under_o their_o government_n then_o the_o king_n arise_v and_o be_v lead_v to_o the_o communion_n table_n where_o he_o make_v a_o solemn_a oath_n in_o sight_n of_o all_o the_o people_n to_o observe_v the_o premise_n and_o lay_v his_o hand_n upon_o the_o book_n say_v the_o thing_n which_o i_o have_v before_o promise_v i_o shall_v perform_v and_o keep_v so_o help_v i_o god_n and_o the_o content_n of_o this_o book_n such_o be_v the_o oath_n take_v by_o the_o king_n at_o his_o coronation_n against_o which_o i_o find_v these_o two_o objection_n first_o that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o oath_n which_o ancient_o have_v be_v take_v by_o his_o predecessor_n and_o for_o the_o proof_n thereof_o a_o antiquate_a oath_n be_v find_v out_o and_o publish_v in_o a_o remonstrance_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o bearing_z date_n the_o twenty_o six_o of_o may_n 1642._o and_o second_o it_o be_v object_v in_o some_o of_o the_o pamphlet_n of_o that_o time_n that_o the_o oath_n be_v falsify_v by_o d._n laud_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n to_o make_v it_o more_o to_o the_o king_n advantage_n and_o less_o to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o subject_a than_o it_o have_v be_v former_o for_o answer_v whereunto_o the_o king_n remit_v the_o lord_n and_o commons_o to_o the_o record_n of_o the_o exchequer_n by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v that_o the_o oath_n be_v the_o very_a same_o verbatim_o which_o have_v before_o be_v take_v by_o his_o predecessor_n king_n and_o queen_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o to_o the_o pamphleteer_n it_o be_v answer_v by_o mr._n h._n l._n the_o author_n of_o the_o former_a history_n that_o there_o be_v no_o variation_n from_o the_o old_a form_n but_o the_o addition_n of_o a_o clause_n to_o a_o prayer_n there_o mention_v and_o that_o this_o variation_n be_v not_o the_o solitary_a act_n of_o laud_n alone_o but_o of_o a_o committee_n and_o this_o say_v he_o i_o positive_o assert_v as_o mind_v the_o reformation_n of_o a_o vulgar_a error_n throw_v abroad_o in_o loose_a pamphlet_n that_o bishop_n laud_v alter_v the_o coronation_n oath_n whereas_o the_o oath_n itself_o be_v precise_o the_o same_o with_o former_a precedent_n more_o candid_o in_o this_o than_o the_o author_n of_o the_o present_a history_n how_o great_a a_o royalist_n soever_o he_o desire_v to_o be_v reckon_v fol._n 31._o this_o necessary_a message_n produce_v no_o other_o supply_n then_o this_o insolency_n from_o a_o member_n mr._n clement_n cook_n it_o be_v better_a say_v he_o to_o die_v by_o a_o foreign_a enemy_n then_o to_o be_v destroy_v at_o home_n and_o this_o seditious_a speech_n of_o he_o be_v as_o seditious_o second_v by_o one_o dr._n turner_n of_o who_o the_o king_n complain_v to_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o but_o can_v find_v no_o remedy_n nor_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o he_o shall_v he_o that_o deve_v himself_o of_o a_o natural_a and_o original_a power_n to_o right_v the_o injury_n which_o be_v do_v he_o in_o hope_n to_o find_v relief_n from_o other_o especial_o from_o such_o as_o be_v parcel-guilty_a of_o the_o wrong_n may_v put_v up_o all_o his_o get_n in_o a_o semtress_n thimble_n and_o yet_o never_o fill_v it_o but_o thus_o king_n james_n have_v do_v before_o he_o one_o piggot_n a_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o have_v speak_v disgraceful_o of_o the_o scot_n for_o their_o importunity_n in_o beg_v and_o no_o less_o scornful_o of_o the_o king_n for_o his_o extreme_a profuseness_n in_o give_v add_v withal_o that_o it_o will_v never_o be_v well_o with_o england_n till_o a_o sicilian_a vesper_n be_v make_v of_o the_o scotish_n nation_n for_o which_o seditious_a speech_n when_o that_o king_n may_v have_v take_v the_o law_n into_o his_o own_o hand_n and_o punish_v he_o as_o severe_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n as_o he_o have_v deserve_v yet_o he_o pass_v it_o over_o and_o think_v that_o he_o have_v do_v enough_o in_o give_v a_o hint_n of_o it_o in_o a_o speech_n make_v to_o both_o house_n at_o white-hall_n on_o the_o last_o of_o march_n anno_fw-la 1607._o i_o know_v say_v he_o that_o there_o be_v many_o pigot_n among_o they_o i_o mean_v a_o number_n of_o seditious_a and_o discontent_a particular_a person_n as_o must_v be_v in_o all_o commonwealth_n that_o where_o they_o dare_v may_v peradventure_o talk_v lewd_o enough_o but_o no_o scotish_n man_n ever_o speak_v dishonourble_o of_o england_n in_o parliament_n it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o those_o parliament_n that_o no_o man_n be_v to_o speak_v without_o leave_n from_o the_o chancellor_n for_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o make_v but_o one_o house_n in_o that_o kingdom_n and_o if_o any_o man_n do_v propound_v or_o utter_v any_o seditious_a speech_n he_o be_v straight_o interrupt_v and_o silence_v by_o the_o chancellor_n authority_n this_o say_v there_o be_v a_o end_n of_o that_o business_n for_o aught_o i_o can_v learn_v and_o this_o give_v a_o sufficient_a encouragement_n to_o the_o commons_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n charles_n to_o expect_v the_o like_a from_o whence_o they_o come_v at_o last_o to_o this_o resolution_n not_o to_o suffer_v one_o of_o they_o to_o be_v question_v till_o themselves_o have_v consider_v of_o his_o crime_n which_o as_o our_o author_n true_o note_n keep_v they_o close_o together_o embolden_v thus_o to_o preserve_v themselves_o to_o the_o last_o fol._n 35._o this_o maxim_n as_o they_o make_v use_v of_o in_o this_o present_a parliament_n in_o behalf_n of_o cook_n diggs_n and_o eliot_n which_o two_o last_n have_v be_v imprison_v by_o the_o king_n command_n so_o be_v it_o more_o violent_o and_o pertinacious_o insist_v on_o in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o five_o member_n impeach_v of_o high_a treason_n by_o the_o king_n attorney_n on_o the_o four_o of_o january_n anno_fw-la 1641._o the_o miserable_a effect_n whereof_o we_o still_o feel_v too_o sensible_o fol._n 40_o and_o though_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o prologue_n may_v be_v spare_v be_v make_v up_o with_o elegancy_n yet_o rather_o than_o it_o shall_v be_v lose_v you_o may_v please_v to_o read_v it_o at_o this_o length_n our_o author_n speak_v this_o of_o the_o eloquent_a oration_n make_v by_o sir_n dudley_n diggs_n to_o usher_v in_o the_o impeachment_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o buckingham_n which_o be_v amplify_v and_o press_v in_o six_o tedious_a speech_n by_o glanvil_n pim_n selden_n wansford_n herbert_n and_o sherland_n be_v epilogue_v by_o sir_n john_n eliot_n a_o vein_n of_o oratory_n not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o body_n
be_v this_o viz._n that_o many_o conceive_v that_o innovation_n ãâã_d by_o other_o for_o renovation_n and_o now_o ãâ¦ã_z in_o the_o primitive_a time_n be_v multiply_v in_o ãâ¦ã_z whereat_o they_o in_o their_o sermon_n ãâ¦ã_z into_o what_o be_v interpret_v bitter_a invective_n lib._n 11._o fol._n 141._o which_o put_v a_o great_a difference_n in_o the_o case_n seem_v to_o justify_v the_o offender_n in_o that_o which_o be_v repute_v and_o but_o repute_v to_o be_v bitter_a invective_n and_o to_o condemn_v the_o church_n for_o multiply_a innovation_n in_o the_o service_n of_o god_n second_o m._n sanderson_n tell_v we_o that_o their_o very_a text_n gaââ_n just_a cause_n of_o offence_n and_o mutiny_n and_o many_o such_o reflect_a upoâ_n the_o most_o eminent_a in_o the_o âurch_n and_o violate_v the_o king_n declaration_n for_o the_o depress_v of_o arminiââ_n controversy_n but_o m._n fâller_n must_v needs_o mince_v the_o matter_n and_o though_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o their_o text_n give_v sâme_v and_o but_o some_o offence_n and_o that_o they_o have_v some_o tart_a reflection_n on_o some_o eminent_a person_n in_o the_o church_n add_v next_o that_o they_o be_v apprehend_v to_o violate_v the_o king_n declaration_n not_o that_o the_o king_n declaration_n for_o ãâ¦ã_z as_o his_o own_o word_n be_v have_v be_v violâtââ_n by_o they_o but_o that_o it_o be_v apprehend_v so_o to_o ãâ¦ã_z may_v be_v better_a scholar_n than_o lawyer_n yet_o law_n and_o learning_n must_v submit_v when_o power_n be_v please_v to_o interpose_v which_o intimate_v that_o the_o archbishop_n carry_v this_o business_n by_o the_o hand_n of_o power_n against_o law_n and_o learning_n final_o m._n sandersân_n subjoyn_v the_o death_n of_o archbishop_n harsnet_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o difference_n in_o oxon_n have_v tell_v we_o of_o he_o that_o he_o be_v a_o discreet_a assertor_n of_o these_o necessary_a and_o useful_a ceremony_n m._n fuller_n relate_v the_o same_o story_n have_v tell_v we_o only_o that_o he_o be_v a_o zealous_a assertor_n of_o ceremony_n but_o whether_o useful_a or_o unuseful_a necessary_a or_o unnecessary_a he_o determine_v not_o which_o show_v more_o candour_n in_o the_o state_n then_o the_o church-historian_n so_o farewell_n to_o both_o errata_fw-la on_o the_o advertisement_n page_n 30._o line_n 13._o for_o quaint_a r._n texit_fw-la p_o 34._o l._n 17._o for_o by_o the_o history_n r._n by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o history_n p._n 36._o l._n 29._o for_o fancy_n not_o r._n facies_fw-la non_fw-la r._n facies_fw-la non_fw-la p._n 40._o l._n 27._o for_o of_o over_o r._n in_o ore_n p._n 41._o l._n 3._o for_o midsummer_n last_o r._n midsummer_n 1657._o p._n 70._o l._n 30._o for_o d._n lawd_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n r._n d._n lawd_n then_o bishop_n of_o s._n david_n and_o afterwards_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n p._n 75._o l._n 15._o for_o bleth_z or_o blâso_n p._n 78._o l._n 12._o for_o 1627._o r._n 1629._o p._n 84._o l._n 16._o for_o nassautiae_fw-la r._n nassoniâ_n p._n 94._o l._n 7._o for_o but_o three_o r._n but_o three_o of_o the_o dudlâys_n p._n 98._o l._n 14._o for_o at_o the_o valley_n r._n at_o the_o battle_n p._n 98._o l._n â2_n for_o of_o the_o fiââstâ_n of_o his_o change_n of_o the_o first_o design_n p._n 106._o l._n 10._o for_o willain_n r._n milan_n p._n 120._o l._n 12._o for_o proviso_n promise_n p._n 15â_n l._n 29._o foâ_n sea_n r._n sâales_n p._n 163._o l._n ult_n for_o toucester_n r._n from_o tâucester_n p._n 1â9_n l._n 11._o for_o the_o first_o r._n the_o last_o p._n 205._o l._n 2._o for_o the_o âeast_n r._n they_o least_z antiq._n jad_n lib._n 14._o cap_n 1._o tacit._n annal_n lib_n 4._o 1_o esdr._n cap._n 4._o ver_fw-la 41._o diog._n laert._n in_o vitâ_n chrysippi_n cambd._n in_o oxf._n fol._n 389._o annal_n r._n mariae_fw-la hist._n of_o camb._n hist._n camb._n fol._n 155._o ãâ¦ã_z ãâ¦ã_z camdân_n in_o ãâã_d miâ_n uâ_n abide_v idem_fw-la ibid._n ãâ¦ã_z cam_z b_o it_z fol._n 6â_n exâ_n apud_fw-la suâium_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z sâss_n 7._o act._n 19_o 35._o platina_n in_o vita_fw-la beda_n hist._n eccles._n âib_n 1._o cap._n 4._o lib._n 2._o fol._n 63._o 63._o beda_n hist._n ecclesiast_n ang._n l._n 8._o cap._n 1._o 1._o hist._n l_o 1._o in_o initio_fw-la mart._n polon_n in_o chron._n lâb_n 2._o cap._n 3._o beda_n hist._n ecclesi_n sy_n l_o 2._o c._n 13._o com'd_a in_o staff_n shire_n camden_n in_o ãâã_d sh._n show_v ãâã_d camden_n in_o wâshire_n fol._n 243._o camd._n in_o brit._n fol._n 135._o lactant._n lib._n 16._o cap._n 21._o in_o brit._n fol._n 135._o id._n in_o wissh_n fol._n 241._o camd._n brit._n fol._n 136._o id._n in_o worce_v fol._n 578._o richardsons_n state_n of_o europe_n lib._n 3._o camd._n in_o scotland_n fol._n 45._o câmden_n in_o râchmondshââe_n sol_fw-mi 7â0_n camâen_v in_o kâât_n fol_n 3â3_n ãâ¦ã_z conserââce_n pag._n 71._o bâerewood_n enqu_n cap._n v._n ãâ¦ã_z parenes_n ad_fw-la sâutos_fw-la p._n 99_o grâg_v m._n epâst_n 70._o camden_n in_o wilts_n 141._o camd._n in_o kent_n 324._o act_n ãâ¦ã_z anâo_o â532_n ãâ¦ã_z brevewoods_n ânq_fw-fr cap_n 13._o camden_n in_o monmouthsh_n hist._n of_o st_n george_n l._n 3._o cap._n 3_o 8._o stow_z in_o hen._n 5._o hist._n lib._n 4._o camdân_n in_o râdnor_n 624_o ãâ¦ã_z ãâ¦ã_z ãâã_d h._n 8._o c._n 26._o vossig_n de_fw-fr lat._n hist._n camd._n in_o hun._n fol._n 267._o ovid._n met._n lib._n 2._o history_n of_o floâence_n camden_n annal_n an._n 1586._o acta_fw-la convocationâs_fw-la 1530._o hollinshead_n in_o henry_n 8._o pref_o to_o the_o directory_n hollinsh_fw-mi pag._n 129._o stow_z in_o h._n 8._o pag._n 562._o defence_n of_o the_o apolog._n stat._n 25_o h_n 8._o c._n 19_o stow_z in_o hen._n 8._o fol_n 573._o id._n fol._n 5â4_n camden_n in_o lincolnshire_n fol_n 535._o camd._n ân_n midlesex_n fol_n 4â9_n hist._n edward_n 6._o pâg_n 353._o 1_o eâ_n 6._o c._n 1._o act_n and_o mon._n pag._n 658._o rostâlâ_n abrid_n âf_n 423._o arist._n pol._n l._n 7_o cap._n 16._o antiquit._fw-la bâitan_n calais_n tacit._n hââst_n l_o 1._o tacit._n hiât_n l._n 1._o hist._n of_o q._n mary_n s._n 25._o sâow_v suâveâ_n of_o lond._n p._n 623._o sâowâ_n an._n fol._n 617._o archbishop_n speech_n p._n 71._o lib._n 8_o fol_n 35._o 13_o el._n â_o 12._o 13._o eliz._n c._n 20._o coâfer_v p._n 80._o 29_o eliz._n c._n 2._o appell_n caesaram_fw-la cap._n 7._o pag._n 69._o coââes_v belg._n art_n 31._o consil._n redâundi_fw-la history_n of_o k._n c._n fol._n 143._o fol._n 131._o fâl_n 143._o ãâ¦ã_z ãâ¦ã_z ibid_fw-la p._n 17._o ãâã_d table_n â_o 4_o â_o 68_o 68_o ãâ¦ã_z ãâ¦ã_z ãâ¦ã_z ãâ¦ã_z collection_n of_o speech_n p_o 5._o hist_o of_o k._n ãâ¦ã_z ãâ¦ã_z whether_o ceremony_n use_v at_o his_o bring_n into_o the_o court_n and_o his_o thrust_v out_o of_o it_o minut._n fâel_n collection_n of_o speâââes_n p_o 26._o ãâã_d p._n 2d_o canon_n 7._o 1640._o church_n hist._n fol_n 180._o hist_o k_o charles_n fol._n 208._o camd._n rem_fw-la pag._n 286._o râg_v in_o praef._n to_o the_o artic._n minut._n fael_n annal_n eliz._n treaty_n at_o vxbâidge_n p._n 31._o artic._n 13._o hist._n of_o cam_n fol._n 168._o hist_o of_o king_n char._n âol_n 21._o 21._o animo_fw-la adversus_fw-la libidinem_fw-la âaeco_fw-la apol._n c._n 21._o camd._n rem_fw-la hist._n of_o king_n ch._n fol._n 151._o tacit._n hist._n l._n â_o ãâã_d hist._n l._n 2._o superstition_n chaâged_v on_o dr._n cousin_n cruel_a usage_n of_o mr._n smart_n dr._n cousin_n praise_n buch._n l._n 5_o smââym_n p._n 16._o hist_o of_o scotland_n fol._n 4._o camden_n brit._n l._n 510._o camden_n in_o scot._n fol._n 42._o augustin_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la hist._n of_o the_o church_n of_o scor._n â_o 41â_n etc._n etc._n â_z collect._n pag._n 139._o 139._o p._n 17_o 17_o ibid._n ibid._n ibid._n ibid._n ibid._n ibid._n p._n 18._o 18._o p._n 5._o 5._o ibid_fw-la ibid_fw-la p._n 6._o 6._o p._n 7._o 7._o ibid._n p_o 29._o p._n 6._o 6._o p._n 12._o 12._o p._n 13._o 13._o p._n 18._o 18._o p._n 18._o 18._o p._n 19_o 19_o p._n 5._o
seasonable_o here_o if_o i_o have_v not_o somewhat_o to_o allege_v for_o my_o justification_n but_o when_o the_o reason_n which_o induce_v i_o to_o the_o first_o adventure_n mention_v in_o the_o introduction_n follow_v be_v serious_o consider_v as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v i_o hope_v i_o shall_v be_v capable_a of_o excuse_n at_o the_o least_o if_o not_o of_o pardon_n and_o for_o my_o venture_n on_o the_o other_o i_o shall_v say_v nothing_o more_o at_o the_o present_a but_o that_o as_o well_o my_o love_n to_o truth_n as_o to_o do_v right_a unto_o the_o author_n who_o i_o will_v willing_o look_v on_o as_o a_o man_n well_o principled_a and_o of_o no_o ill_a affection_n to_o church_n or_o state_n have_v invite_v i_o to_o it_o truth_n be_v the_o mistress_n which_o i_o serve_v and_o i_o presume_v that_o none_o will_v be_v offend_v with_o i_o because_o i_o tell_v they_o of_o their_o error_n in_o a_o modest_a way_n and_o bear_v witness_n for_o they_o to_o that_o truth_n of_o which_o they_o do_v profess_v themselves_o such_o especial_a lover_n in_o that_o great_a disputation_n between_o the_o esquire_n of_o the_o body_n of_o king_n darius_n whether_o the_o king_n wine_n women_z or_o the_o truth_n be_v of_o great_a power_n the_o whole_a assembly_n cry_v out_o in_o behalf_n of_o truth_n magna_fw-la est_fw-la veritas_fw-la &_o praevalet_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v great_a be_v truth_n and_o mighty_a above_o all_o thing_n so_o that_o in_o stand_v for_o the_o truth_n without_o consideration_n unto_o the_o recompense_n of_o reward_n i_o hope_v though_o i_o meeâ_n some_o adversary_n i_o shall_v find_v more_o friend_n if_o not_o for_o i_o be_o at_o a_o reasonable_a pass_n for_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v no_o small_a comfort_n to_o i_o that_o the_o weak_a candle_n of_o my_o study_n have_v give_v light_a to_o othârs_n whereby_o they_o may_v discern_v some_o historical_a â_z even_o in_o the_o dark_a mist_n of_o error_n which_o either_o partiality_n or_o incogitancy_n have_v cast_v before_o the_o eye_n of_o unwary_a reader_n which_o say_v i_o shall_v now_o add_v no_o more_o but_o that_o have_v two_o patient_n under_o cure_n of_o different_a temper_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v think_v that_o i_o shall_v administer_v unto_o both_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o physic_n a_o ordinary_a purge_n be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o one_o whereas_o the_o foul_a body_n of_o the_o other_o do_v require_v a_o flux_v as_o some_o wound_n may_v be_v heal_v with_o balm_n when_o other_o more_o corrupt_a and_o putrify_a do_v exact_v a_o lance_a but_o so_o it_o happen_v many_o time_n that_o some_o man_n be_v more_o impatient_a of_o the_o cure_n then_o sensible_a of_o their_o disease_n and_o that_o in_o stead_n of_o give_v thanks_o to_o the_o physician_n for_o the_o great_a pain_n he_o take_v about_o they_o they_o pay_v he_o with_o nothing_o but_o displeasure_n which_o be_v the_o worst_a that_o can_v befall_v i_o i_o be_o arm_v against_o it_o if_o by_o the_o hazard_n of_o my_o peace_n i_o shall_v procure_v this_o benefit_n to_o the_o present_a and_o succeed_a time_n that_o man_n may_v prove_v more_o careful_a of_o what_o they_o write_v and_o not_o obtrude_v upon_o the_o reader_n either_o through_o ignorance_n inadvertency_n or_o somewhat_o worse_o such_o and_o so_o many_o falsity_n mistake_v and_o error_n as_o have_v be_v late_o put_v upon_o he_o in_o some_o modern_a history_n it_o be_v that_o i_o aim_v at_o and_o have_v gain_v that_o point_n i_o have_v gain_v my_o purpose_n non_fw-la partis_fw-la studiis_fw-la agimur_fw-la sed_fw-la sumpsimus_fw-la arma_fw-la consiliis_fw-la inimica_fw-la tuis_fw-la ignavia_fw-la fallax_fw-la peter_n heyliu_fw-la examen_fw-la historicum_fw-la or_o a_o discovery_n and_o examination_n of_o the_o mistake_v falsity_n and_o defect_n in_o some_o modern_a history_n part._n i._n contain_v necessary_a animadversion_n on_o the_o church-history_n of_o britain_n and_o the_o history_n of_o cambridge_n publish_a by_o thomas_n fuller_n for_o vindication_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o church_n and_o the_o injure_a clergy_n 2_o corinth_n 13._o 8._o non_fw-la possumus_fw-la aliquid_fw-la adversus_fw-la veritatem_fw-la sed_fw-la pro_fw-la veritate_fw-la minut._n foel_n in_o octavio_n et_fw-la veritas_fw-la quidem_fw-la obvia_fw-la est_fw-la sed_fw-la requirentibus_fw-la a_o necessary_a introduction_n to_o the_o follow_v animadversion_n on_o the_o church-history_n of_o britain_n touch_v the_o title_n of_o the_o book_n and_o the_o preface_n to_o it_o 1._o intend_v some_o short_a animadversion_n on_o the_o church_n history_n of_o britain_n for_o vindication_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o church_n and_o the_o injure_a clergy_n i_o have_v think_v good_a to_o prepare_v the_o way_n unto_o they_o by_o a_o plain_a but_o necessary_a introduction_n touch_v the_o quality_n and_o nature_n of_o the_o book_n which_o i_o have_v in_o hand_n concern_v which_o the_o reader_n be_v to_o understand_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1642._o m._n fuller_n publish_v his_o book_n call_v the_o holy_a state_n in_o the_o preface_n whereof_o he_o let_v we_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v count_v it_o freedom_n to_o serve_v two_o apprenticeship_n god_n spin_v out_o the_o thick_a thread_n of_o his_o life_n so_o long_o in_o write_v the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n from_o christ_n time_n to_o our_o day_n and_o so_o much_o time_n it_o seem_v he_o have_v spend_v upon_o it_o except_o some_o start_n for_o recreation_n in_o the_o holy_a land_n before_o he_o have_v finish_v and_o expose_v it_o to_o the_o public_a view_n the_o book_n not_o come_v out_o until_o the_o year_n 1655._o whether_o agreeable_a to_o his_o promise_n and_o such_o a_o tedious_a expectation_n we_o be_v now_o to_o see_v for_o first_o the_o reader_n may_v expect_v by_o the_o former_a passage_n that_o he_o design_v the_o general_n history_n of_o the_o church_n from_o the_o first_o preach_v of_o christ_n and_o the_o call_n of_o the_o twelve_o apostle_n to_o the_o time_n we_o live_v in_o whereas_o he_o have_v restrain_v himself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o britain_n which_o he_o conceive_v to_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v found_v in_o the_o time_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o be_v loath_a to_o give_v it_o the_o antiquity_n of_o be_v the_o work_n of_o any_o of_o the_o apostle_n of_o any_o of_o the_o seventy_o disciple_n or_o final_o of_o any_o apostolical_a spirit_n of_o those_o elder_a time_n and_o second_o though_o he_o entitle_v it_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church-history_n of_o britain_n yet_o he_o pursue_v not_o his_o design_n agreeable_a to_o that_o title_n neither_o there_o be_v little_o say_v of_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n of_o scotland_n which_o certain_o make_v up_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o isle_n of_o britain_n and_o less_o if_o any_o thing_n at_o all_o of_o the_o church_n of_o ireland_n which_o ancient_o pass_v in_o the_o account_n of_o a_o british_a island_n nor_o be_v it_o three_o a_o church-history_n right_o and_o proper_o so_o call_v but_o a_o aggregation_n of_o such_o and_o so_o many_o heterogeneous_a body_n that_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n make_v the_o least_o part_n of_o it_o abstract_a from_o the_o dress_n and_o trim_v and_o all_o those_o outward_a embellishment_n which_o appear_v upon_o it_o it_o have_v a_o very_a fit_a resemblance_n to_o that_o lady_n of_o pleasure_n of_o which_o marshal_n tell_v we_o pars_fw-la minima_fw-la est_fw-la ipsa_fw-la pvella_fw-la svi_fw-la that_o the_o woman_n be_v the_o least_o part_n of_o herself_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church-rhapsody_n have_v be_v fit_a for_o it_o though_o to_o say_v truth_n have_v it_o be_v answerable_a thereunto_o in_o point_n of_o learning_n it_o may_v have_v pass_v by_o the_o old_a title_n of_o fuller_n miscellany_n for_o such_o and_o so_o many_o be_v the_o impertinency_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o historical_a nature_n more_o as_o to_o matter_n of_o the_o church_n that_o without_o they_o this_o great_a volume_n have_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o narrow_a compass_n if_o it_o have_v take_v up_o any_o room_n at_o all_o so_o that_o we_o may_v affirm_v of_o the_o present_a history_n as_o one_o do_v of_o the_o write_n of_o chrysippus_n a_o old_a philosopher_n chrysippi_n viz._n si_fw-mi quis_fw-la tollat_fw-la &_o chrysippi_n libris_fw-la quae_fw-la aliena_fw-la sunt_fw-la facilâ_fw-la illi_fw-la vacua_fw-la relinquerentur_fw-la pergamena_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o if_o they_o be_v well_o purge_v of_o all_o such_o passage_n as_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o the_o business_n which_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n there_o will_v be_v nothing_o leave_v in_o they_o to_o fill_v up_o his_o parchment_n 2._o the_o first_o of_o this_o kind_n which_o i_o be_o to_o note_v be_v a_o mere_a extrinsecall_n and_o outside_n unto_o those_o impertinence_n which_o be_v couch_v within_o consist_v of_o title-page_n dedicatory_a epistle_n and_o several_a intermediate_v inscription_n unto_o every_o section_n a_o new_a way_n never_o travel_v before_o by_o
temporal_a subject_n and_o this_o they_o do_v by_o their_o own_o sole_a authority_n as_o before_o be_v say_v order_v the_o same_o to_o be_v levy_v on_o all_o such_o as_o be_v refractory_a by_o sequestration_n deprivation_n suspension_n excommunication_n ecclesiastical_a censure_n all_o without_o relate_v to_o any_o subsequent_a confirmation_n by_o act_n of_o parliament_n which_o they_o conceive_v they_o have_v no_o need_n of_o nor_o find_v we_o any_o thing_n of_o the_o convocation_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n except_o that_o of_o the_o year_n 1562._o and_o that_o not_o fair_o deal_v with_o neither_o as_o be_v elsewhere_o show_v though_o there_o pass_v many_o canon_n in_o the_o convocation_n of_o the_o year_n 1571._o and_o of_o the_o year_n 1585._o and_o the_o year_n 1597._o all_o print_a and_o still_o public_o extant_a beside_o the_o memorable_a convocation_n of_o the_o year_n 1555._o in_o which_o the_o clergy_n give_v the_o queen_n a_o benevolence_n of_o 2d_o in_o the_o pound_n to_o be_v levy_v by_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n without_o relate_v to_o any_o subsequent_a confirmation_n by_o act_n of_o parliament_n as_o have_v accustomable_o be_v use_v in_o the_o grant_n of_o subsidy_n it_o may_v have_v be_v expect_v also_o that_o we_o shall_v have_v find_v in_o a_o church_n history_n of_o britain_n the_o several_a degree_n and_o step_n by_o which_o the_o heterodoxy_n and_o superstition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v creep_v in_o among_o we_o and_o the_o degree_n by_o which_o they_o be_v eject_v and_o cast_v out_o again_o and_o the_o whole_a reformation_n settle_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n attend_v by_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n as_o also_o that_o some_o honourable_a mention_n shall_v be_v find_v of_o those_o gallant_a defence_n which_o be_v make_v by_o dr._n bancroft_n dr._n bilson_n dr._n bridges_n dr._n cousin_n and_o divers_a other_o against_o the_o violent_a battery_n and_o assault_n of_o the_o puritan_n faction_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n and_o of_o the_o learned_a write_n of_o b._n buckeridge_n b._n morton_n dr._n suâcliff_n dr._n burges_n etc._n etc._n in_o justification_n of_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o the_o remnant_n of_o that_o scatter_v and_o then_o break_v faction_n in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n james_n of_o which_o we_o have_v negry_n quidem_fw-la not_o a_o word_n deliver_v nor_o can_v it_o stand_v with_o his_o design_n which_o will_v discover_v itself_o in_o part_n in_o this_o introduction_n and_o shall_v more_o full_o be_v discover_v in_o the_o animadversion_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o all_o which_o together_o make_v it_o clear_a and_o evident_a that_o there_o be_v too_o little_a of_o the_o church_n or_o ecclesiastical_a history_n in_o our_o author_n book_n and_o that_o there_o be_v too_o much_o of_o the_o state_n or_o civil_a history_n will_v be_v easy_o see_v by_o that_o unnecessary_a intermixture_n of_o state-concernments_a not_o pertinent_a to_o the_o business_n which_o he_o have_v in_o hand_n of_o this_o sort_n to_o look_v back_o no_o further_o be_v the_o long_a will_n and_o testament_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o with_o his_o gloss_n or_o comment_n on_o the_o same_o take_v up_o three_o whole_a sheet_n at_o least_o in_o which_o there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n which_o concern_v religion_n or_o which_o relate_v unto_o the_o church_n or_o church-affair_n although_o to_o have_v the_o better_a colour_n to_o bring_v it_o in_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o have_v transcribe_v it_o not_o only_o for_o the_o rarity_n thereof_o but_o because_o it_o contain_v many_o passage_n which_o may_v reflect_v much_o light_n upon_o his_o church-history_n lib._n 5._o âol_n 243._o of_o this_o sort_n also_o be_v his_o description_n of_o the_o pomp_n and_o order_n of_o the_o coronation_n of_o king_n charles_n which_o though_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v not_o to_o be_v within_o the_o pale_a and_o park_n of_o ecclesiastical_a history_n yet_o he_o resolve_v to_o bring_v it_o in_o because_o it_o come_v within_o the_o purlieus_n of_o it_o as_o his_o own_o word_n be_v but_o for_o this_o he_o have_v a_o better_a reason_n than_o we_o be_v aware_a of_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o if_o hereafter_o divine_a providence_n shall_v assign_v england_n another_o king_n though_o the_o transaction_n herein_o be_v not_o whole_o precedential_a something_o of_o state_n may_v be_v choose_v out_o grateful_a for_o imitation_n lib._n 11._o fol._n 124._o as_o if_o the_o pomp_n and_o order_n of_o a_o coroânation_n be_v not_o more_o punctual_o preserve_v in_o the_o herald_n office_n who_o have_v the_o order_n of_o all_o thing_n do_v without_o the_o church_n and_o be_v eye-witness_n of_o all_o which_o be_v do_v within_o then_o in_o our_o author_n second-hand_n and_o imperfect_a collection_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v also_o of_o the_o quick_a and_o active_a reign_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o and_o queen_n marry_o in_o which_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n be_v digest_v settle_v and_o destroy_v sufficient_a of_o itself_o to_o make_v a_o competent_a volumn_n but_o contract_v by_o our_o author_n like_o homer_n iliad_n in_o the_o nut_n shell_n into_o less_o than_o 25_o sheet_n and_o yet_o in_o that_o small_a abstract_n we_o find_v many_o impertinency_n as_o to_o the_o work_n he_o have_v in_o hand_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o great_a proficiency_n of_o king_n edward_n in_o his_o grammar_n learning_n exemplify_v in_o three_o piece_n of_o latin_a of_o his_o make_n when_o he_o be_v but_o eight_o or_o nine_o year_n old_a the_o long_a narrative_n of_o sir_n edward_n montague_n chief_a justice_n of_o the_o common_a plea_n to_o vindicate_v himself_o from_o be_v a_o voluntary_a agent_n in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o lady_n jane_n grace_n the_o full_a and_o punctual_a relation_n of_o wâats_n rebellion_n and_o the_o issue_n of_o it_o though_o act_v upon_o some_o false_a ground_n of_o civil_a interess_n without_o relate_v to_o religion_n or_o to_o church_n affair_n infinitum_fw-la esset_fw-la âre_n per_fw-la singula_fw-la it_o be_v a_o infinite_a labour_n to_o look_v into_o all_o particular_n of_o this_o nature_n which_o be_v find_v in_o our_o author_n make_v up_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o book_n but_o we_o may_v guess_v by_o this_o brief_a view_n as_o exit_fw-la pede_fw-la hereulem_fw-la that_o his_o diversion_n upon_o civil_a matter_n and_o affair_n of_o state_n which_o neither_o have_v relation_n to_o nor_o any_o influence_n at_o all_o upon_o those_o of_o the_o church_n do_v make_v up_o a_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o book_n which_o civil_a matter_n and_o state-concernments_a be_v discharge_v also_o as_o in_o all_o reason_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v we_o next_o proceed_v to_o the_o church-history_n itself_o in_o which_o if_o we_o shall_v make_v the_o like_a defalkation_n and_o expunge_v every_o passage_n which_o be_v either_o positive_o false_a or_o ignorant_o mistake_v by_o he_o there_o will_v be_v very_o little_o leave_v to_o inform_v the_o reader_n as_o by_o the_o follow_a animadversion_n will_v appear_v sufficient_o 8._o but_o well_o it_o be_v if_o only_a abberration_n from_o historical_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v meet_v with_o in_o our_o author_n in_o who_o we_o find_v such_o a_o continual_a vein_n of_o puritanism_n such_o dangerous_a ground_n for_o inconformity_n and_o sedition_n to_o be_v raise_v upon_o as_o easy_o may_v pervert_v the_o unwary_a reader_n who_o the_o facetiousness_n of_o the_o stile_n like_o a_o hook_n bait_v with_o a_o paint_a fly_n may_v be_v apt_a to_o work_v on_o murder_v of_o king_n avow_v for_o necessary_a prudence_n as_o oft_o as_o they_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o power_n of_o their_o subject_n lib._n 4_o fol._n 109._o the_o coronation_n of_o the_o king_n and_o consequent_o their_o succession_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n make_v to_o depend_v upon_o the_o suffrage_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n lib._n 11._o fol._n 122._o the_o sword_n extort_a from_o the_o supreme_a magistrate_n and_o put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o common_a people_n whensoever_o the_o reform_a humour_n shall_v grow_v strong_a among_o they_o lib._n 9_o fol._n 51._o the_o church_n deprive_v of_o her_o authority_n in_o determine_v controversy_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o a_o dispute_n raise_v against_o that_o clause_n of_o the_o atticle_n in_o which_o that_o authority_n be_v declare_v whether_o forge_v or_o not_o lib._n 9_o f._n 73._o her_o power_n in_o make_v canon_n every_o where_o prostitute_v to_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o parliament_n contrary_a both_o to_o law_n and_o constant_a practice_n the_o heterodoxy_n of_o wickliff_n canonize_v for_o gospel_n and_o calvin_n opinion_n whatsoever_o they_o be_v declare_v for_o orthodox_n the_o sabbatarian_n rigour_n publish_v for_o divine_a and_o ancient_a truth_n though_o there_o be_v no_o antiquity_n nor_o divinity_n
puritanical_a zeal_n shall_v be_v lose_v to_o posterity_n these_o thing_n i_o may_v have_v note_v in_o their_o proper_a place_n but_o that_o they_o be_v reserve_v for_o this_o as_o a_o taste_n to_o the_o rest_n 12._o et_fw-la jam_fw-la finis_fw-la erat_fw-la and_o here_o i_o think_v i_o shall_v have_v end_v this_o anatomy_n of_o our_o author_n book_n but_o that_o there_o be_v another_o passage_n in_o the_o preface_n thereof_o which_o require_v a_o little_o further_a consideration_n for_o in_o that_o preface_n he_o inform_v we_o by_o the_o way_n of_o caution_n that_o the_o three_o first_o book_n be_v for_o the_o main_a write_v in_o the_o reign_n of_o the_o late_a king_n as_o appear_z by_o the_o passage_n then_o proper_a for_o the_o government_n the_o other_o nine_o book_n be_v make_v since_o monarchy_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o state_n by_o which_o it_o seem_v that_o our_o author_n never_o mean_v to_o frame_v his_o history_n by_o the_o line_n of_o truth_n but_o to_o attemper_v it_o to_o the_o palate_n of_o the_o present_a government_n whatsoever_o it_o then_o be_v or_o shall_v prove_v to_o be_v which_o i_o be_o sure_a agree_v not_o with_o the_o law_n of_o history_n and_o though_o i_o can_v most_o easy_o grant_v that_o the_o four_o book_n and_o the_o rest_n that_o follow_v be_v write_v after_o the_o great_a alteration_n and_o change_n of_o state_n in_o make_v a_o new_a commonwealth_n out_o of_o the_o ruin_n of_o a_o ancient_a monarchy_n yet_o i_o concur_v not_o with_o our_o author_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o former_a for_o it_o appear_v by_o some_o passage_n that_o the_o three_o first_o book_n either_o be_v not_o all_o write_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o king_n or_o else_o he_o must_v give_v himself_o some_o disloyal_a hope_n that_o the_o king_n shall_v never_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o place_n and_o poweâ_n by_o which_o he_o may_v be_v call_v to_o a_o reckon_n for_o they_o for_o in_o the_o second_o book_n he_o reckon_v the_o cross_n in_o baptism_n for_o a_o popish_a trinket_n by_o which_o it_o appear_v not_o i_o be_o sure_a to_o have_v be_v write_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o kingly_a government_n that_o be_v no_o expression_n suitable_a unto_o such_o a_o time_n second_o speak_v of_o the_o precedency_n which_o be_v six_o in_o canterbury_n by_o remove_v the_o archiepiscopal_n see_v from_o london_n thither_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o ãâã_d be_v not_o muâh_o which_o see_v go_v first_o when_o live_v see_v our_o age_n âath_v lay_v they_o âoth_v alike_o level_a in_o in_o their_o grave_n but_o certain_o the_o government_n be_v not_o change_v into_o a_o state_n or_o commonwealth_n till_o the_o death_n of_o the_o king_n and_o till_o the_o death_n of_o the_o king_n neither_o of_o those_o episcopal_n see_v nor_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n be_v lay_v so_o level_a in_o their_o grave_n but_o that_o they_o be_v in_o hope_n of_o a_o resurrection_n the_o king_n declare_v himself_o very_o constant_o in_o the_o treaty_n at_o the_o isle_n of_o wight_n as_o well_o against_o the_o abolish_n of_o the_o episcopal_a government_n as_o the_o alienation_n of_o their_o land_n three_o in_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o same_o book_n he_o make_v a_o great_a dispute_n against_o the_o high_a and_o sacred_a privilege_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n in_o cure_v the_o disease_n common_o call_v the_o king_n evil_a whether_o to_o be_v impute_v to_o magic_n or_o imagination_n or_o indeed_o a_o miracle_n next_o bring_v we_o in_o a_o old_a wife_n tale_n about_o queen_n elizabeth_n as_o if_o she_o have_v disclaim_v that_o power_n which_o she_o daily_o exercise_v and_o final_o manage_v a_o quarrel_n against_o the_o form_n of_o prayer_n use_v at_o the_o cure_n of_o that_o evil_a which_o he_o arraign_v for_o superstition_n and_o impertinency_n no_o inferior_a crime_n be_v all_o these_o passage_n proper_a to_o that_o government_n also_o final_o in_o the_o three_o book_n he_o derogate_v from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n in_o make_v canon_n give_v the_o bind_n and_o conclude_v power_n in_o matter_n which_o concern_v the_o civil_a right_n of_o the_o subject_n not_o to_o the_o king_n but_o to_o the_o lay-people_n of_o the_o land_n assemble_v in_o parliament_n which_o game_n he_o after_o follow_v in_o the_o âighth_n and_o last_o and_o though_o it_o may_v be_v safe_a enough_o for_o he_o in_o the_o eight_o &_o last_o to_o derogate_v in_o this_o manner_n from_o the_o king_n supremacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n yet_o certain_o it_o be_v neither_o safe_a for_o he_o so_o to_o do_v nor_o proper_a for_o he_o so_o to_o write_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o kingly_a government_n unless_o he_o have_v some_o such_o wretched_a hope_n as_o before_o we_o spâke_v of_o ãâã_d i_o must_v need_v say_v that_o on_o the_o read_n of_o these_o passage_n anâ_n the_o rest_n that_o follow_v i_o find_v myself_o possess_v with_o much_o indignation_n and_o long_o expect_v when_o some_o champion_n will_v appear_v in_o the_o list_n against_o this_o goliath_n who_o so_o reproachful_o have_v defile_v the_o whole_a army_n of_o israel_n and_o i_o must_v needs_o confess_v withal_o that_o i_o do_v never_o enter_v more_o unwilling_o upon_o any_o undertake_n than_o i_o do_v on_o this_o but_o be_v solicit_v thereunto_o by_o letter_n message_n and_o several_a personal_a address_n by_o man_n of_o all_o order_n and_o dignity_n in_o the_o church_n and_o of_o all_o degree_n in_o the_o university_n i_o be_v at_o last_o overcome_v by_o that_o importunity_n which_o i_o find_v will_v not_o be_v resist_v i_o know_v that_o as_o the_o time_n now_o stand_v i_o be_o to_o expect_v nothing_o for_o my_o pain_n and_o travel_n but_o the_o displeasure_n of_o some_o and_o the_o censure_n of_o other_o but_o come_v to_o the_o work_n with_o a_o single_a heart_n abstract_v from_o all_o self-end_n and_o private_a interess_n i_o shall_v satisfy_v myself_o with_o have_v do_v this_o poor_a service_n to_o the_o church_n my_o once_o bless_a mother_n for_o who_o sake_n only_o i_o have_v put_v myself_o upon_o this_o adventure_n the_o party_n who_o i_o be_o to_o deal_v with_o be_v so_o much_o a_o stranger_n to_o i_o that_o he_o be_v neither_o beneficio_fw-la nec_fw-la injurià _fw-la notus_fw-la and_o therefore_o no_o particular_a respect_n have_v move_v i_o to_o the_o make_n of_o these_o animadversion_n which_o i_o have_v write_v without_o relation_n to_o his_o person_n for_o vindication_n of_o the_o truth_n the_o church_n and_o the_o injure_a clergy_n as_o before_o be_v say_v so_o that_o i_o may_v affirm_v with_o a_o honest_a conscience_n non_fw-la lecta_fw-la est_fw-la operi_fw-la sed_fw-la data_fw-la causa_fw-la meo_fw-la that_o this_o employment_n be_v not_o choose_v by_o i_o but_o impose_v upon_o i_o the_o unresistable_a entreaty_n of_o so_o many_o friend_n have_v something_o in_o they_o of_o command_n but_o howsoever_o jacta_fw-la est_fw-la alea_fw-la as_o caesar_n once_o say_v when_o he_o pass_v over_o the_o rubicon_n i_o must_v now_o take_v my_o fortune_n whatsoever_o it_o prove_v so_o god_n speed_v i_o well_o errata_fw-la on_o the_o animadversion_n page_n 10._o line_n 17._o for_o melkinus_n r._n telkinus_n p._n 20._o l._n 21._o for_o queen_n of_o r._n queen_n of_o england_n p._n 27._o l._n 6._o for_o woodeâ_n poir_fw-fr r._n woodensdike_n s_o p._n 42._o l._n 1._o for_o inconsiderateness_n r._n the_o inconsiderateness_n of_o child_n p._n 121._o l._n 28._o for_o ter_z r._n better_a p._n 145._o l._n 2._o for_o statuendo_fw-la r._n statuendi_fw-la p._n 154._o l._n 22._o horcontnar_fw-mi r._n cantuur_n p._n 154._o l._n 17._o for_o dr._n hammond_n r._n d._n book_n p._n 160._o l._n 1._o for_o his_o r._n this_o p._n 163._o l._n 28._o for_o jesuit_n r._n franciscan_n p._n 189._o l._n ult_n for_o contemn_v r._n confession_n p._n 221._o in_o the_o marg._n for_o wether_n r._n with_o other_o p._n 228._o l._n 2._o for_o den_n r._n dean_n p._n 239._o l._n 29._o for_o commons_o r._n canon_n p._n 271._o l._n ult_n for_o culis_fw-la r._n occulis_fw-la animadversion_n on_o the_o church_n history_n of_o britain_n lib_fw-la i._o of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o britan_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ._n in_o order_n to_o the_o first_o conversion_n oâ_n ãâã_d british_a nation_n our_o author_n take_v beginning_n at_o the_o sad_a condition_n they_o be_v in_o beâore_o the_o christian_a faith_n be_v preach_v unto_o they_o â_o and_o in_o a_o sad_a condition_n they_o be_v indeed_o as_o be_v in_o the_o estate_n of_o gentilism_n and_o consequent_o without_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o god_n that_o make_v they_o but_o yet_o not_o in_o a_o worse_a condition_n than_o the_o other_o gentile_n wââ_n be_v not_o only_o darken_v in_o their_o understanding_n bâââo_o deprave_v also_o in_o their_o affection_n as_o to_o work_v all_o maânâer_n of_o uncleanness_n even_o
trouble_n at_o all_o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n quote_v in_o that_o letter_n be_v out_o of_o st._n hieroms_n translation_n which_o come_v more_o than_o a_o hundred_o year_n after_o unless_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v with_o all_o as_o i_o think_v it_o can_v the_o hierom_n follow_v not_o in_o those_o text_n those_o old_a translation_n which_o be_v before_o receive_v and_o use_v in_o the_o western_a church_n lesle_n be_o i_o move_v with_o that_o which_o follow_v viz._n that_o this_o letter_n not_o appear_v till_o a_o thousand_o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o pope_n eleutherius_fw-la may_v probable_o creep_v out_o of_o some_o monkâ_n cell_n some_o four_o hundred_o year_n since_o which_o allegation_n be_v admit_v the_o monk_n cell_n except_v it_o make_v no_o more_o to_o the_o discredit_n of_o the_o letter_n which_o we_o have_v before_o we_o then_o to_o the_o undervalue_v of_o those_o excellent_a monument_n of_o piety_n and_o learning_n which_o have_v be_v recover_v of_o late_a time_n from_o the_o dust_n and_o moth_n of_o ancient_a library_n such_o treasure_n like_o money_n long_o lock_v up_o be_v never_o think_v less_o profitable_a when_o it_o come_v abroad_o and_o from_o what_o place_n soever_o it_o first_o come_v abroad_o i_o be_o confident_a it_o come_v not_o out_o of_o any_o monk_n cell_n that_o generation_n be_v then_o whole_o at_o the_o pope_n devotion_n by_o consequence_n not_o likely_a to_o divulge_v a_o evidence_n so_o manifest_o tend_v to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o his_o pretension_n the_o pope_n about_o four_o hundred_o year_n since_o be_v mount_v to_o the_o height_n of_o that_o power_n and_o tyranny_n which_o they_o claim_v as_o vicar_n unto_o christ._n to_o which_o theâe_n can_v not_o any_o thing_n be_v more_o plain_o contrary_a then_o that_o passage_n in_o the_o pope_n letter_n where_o he_o tell_v the_o king_n that_o he_o be_v god_n vicar_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n vos_fw-la estis_fw-la vicarius_fw-la deâ_n in_fw-la regno_fw-la vestro_fw-la as_o the_o latin_a have_v it_o too_o great_a a_o secret_a to_o proceed_v from_o the_o cell_n of_o a_o monk_n who_o will_v have_v rather_o forge_v ten_o decretal_n to_o âphoâd_v the_o pâpisâ_n ãâã_d over_o sovereign_n prince_n then_o publish_v one_o only_a whether_o true_a or_o false_a to_o subvert_v the_o same_o nor_o do_v this_o letter_n only_o give_v the_o king_n a_o empty_a title_n but_o such_o a_o title_n as_o import_v the_o exercise_n of_o the_o chief_a ecclesiastical_a power_n within_o his_o dominion_n for_o thus_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o the_o people_n and_o the_o folk_n of_o the_o realm_n of_o britain_n be_v you_o who_o if_o they_o be_v divide_v you_o ought_v together_o in_o concord_n and_o peace_n to_o call_v they_o to_o the_o faith_n and_o law_n of_o christ_n to_o cherish_v and_o maintain_v they_o to_o rule_v and_o govern_v they_o so_o as_o you_o may_v reign_v everlasting_o with_o he_o who_o vicar_n you_o be_v so_o far_o the_o very_a word_n of_o the_o letter_n as_o our_o author_n render_v they_o which_o savour_v far_o more_o of_o the_o honest_a simplicity_n of_o the_o primitive_a pope_n than_o the_o imposture_n and_o supposititious_a issue_n of_o the_o âatter_a time_n our_o author_n tell_v we_o fol._n 9_o that_o he_o have_v venture_v on_o this_o story_n with_o much_o averseness_n and_o we_o dare_v believe_v he_o he_o have_v not_o else_o labour_v to_o discredit_v it_o in_o so_o many_o particular_n and_o wilful_o that_o i_o say_v no_o worse_o suppress_v the_o best_a part_n of_o the_o evidence_n in_o the_o word_n of_o beda_n who_o be_v no_o friend_n unto_o the_o britan_n 4._o have_v notwithstanding_o do_v they_o right_o in_o this_o great_a business_n and_o from_o he_o take_v the_o story_n in_o these_o follow_a word_n anno_fw-la ab_fw-la iâcarnatiâne_fw-la domini_fw-la 156_o etc._n etc._n in_o the_o 156._o year_n after_o christ_n nativity_n marcus_n antonius_n verus_n together_o with_o aurelius_n commodus_n his_o brother_n do_v in_o the_o fourteen_o place_n from_o augustus_n caesar_n undertake_v the_o government_n of_o the_o empire_n in_o who_o time_n when_o as_o eleutherius_fw-la a_o godly_a man_n be_v bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n lucius_n king_n of_o the_o britan_n send_v unto_o he_o obsecrans_fw-la ut_fw-la per_fw-la ejus_fw-la mandatum_fw-la christianus_n essiceretur_fw-la entreat_v by_o his_o mean_n to_o be_v make_v a_o christian_a who_o vertrious_a desire_n he_o ein_fw-mi be_v grant_v and_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n be_v thus_o receive_v by_o the_o britan_n be_v by_o they_o keep_v inviolate_a and_o undefiled_a until_o the_o time_n of_o diocâtian_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o story_n as_o by_o he_o deliver_v true_a in_o the_o main_a though_o possible_o there_o may_v be_v some_o mistake_n in_o his_o chronology_n as_o in_o a_o matter_n not_o so_o canvas_v as_o it_o have_v be_v late_o now_o to_o proceed_v unto_o our_o author_n he_o tell_v we_o fol._n 10._o out_o of_o jeffery_n of_o monmouth_n that_o at_o this_o time_n there_o be_v in_o england_n twenty_o eight_o city_n each_o of_o they_o have_v a_o flamen_n or_o pagan_a priest_n and_o three_o of_o they_o namely_o london_n york_n and_o caerlion_n in_o wales_n have_v archflaman_n to_o which_o the_o rest_n be_v subject_v and_o lucius_n place_v bishop_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o flamen_n and_o archbishop_n metropolitan_o in_o the_o place_n of_o archflaman_n conclude_v in_o the_o way_n of_o scorn_n that_o his_o flamen_fw-la and_o archflamine_n seem_v to_o be_v flam_n and_o archflam_n even_o notorious_a falsehood_n and_o it_o be_v well_o they_o do_v but_o seem_v so_o it_o be_v possible_o enough_o that_o they_o may_v seem_v falsehood_n to_o our_o author_n even_o notorious_a falsehood_n though_o they_o seem_v true_a enough_o to_o other_o even_o apparent_a truth_n and_o first_o though_o jeffery_n of_o monmouth_n seem_v to_o deserve_v no_o credit_n in_o this_o particular_a where_o he_o speak_v against_o our_o author_n sense_n yet_o in_o another_o place_n where_o he_o come_v up_o to_o his_o desire_n he_o be_v otherwise_o think_v of_o and_o therefore_o make_v the_o foreman_n of_o the_o grand_a inquest_n against_o augustino_n the_o monk_n who_o he_o endit_v for_o the_o murder_n of_o the_o monk_n of_o bancor_n and_o certain_o if_o jeffery_n may_v be_v believe_v when_o he_o speak_v in_o passion_n when_o his_o welsh_a blood_n be_v up_o 63._o as_o our_o author_n word_n it_o as_o one_o that_o be_v concern_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o countryman_n he_o may_v more_o easy_o be_v believe_v in_o a_o cause_n of_o so_o remote_a antiquity_n where_o neither_o love_n nor_o hatred_n or_o any_o other_o prevalent_a affection_n have_v any_o power_n or_o reason_n to_o divert_v he_o from_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n and_o second_o though_o jeffery_n of_o monmouth_n be_v a_o writer_n of_o no_o great_a credit_n with_o i_o when_o he_o stand_v single_a by_o himself_o yet_o when_o i_o find_v he_o second_v and_o confirm_v by_o other_o i_o shall_v not_o brand_v a_o truth_n by_o the_o name_n of_o falsehood_n because_o he_o report_v it_o now_o that_o in_o britain_n at_o that_o time_n there_o be_v no_o few_o than_o eight_o and_o twenty_o city_n be_v affirm_v by_o beda_n 1._o henry_n of_o huntingdon_n initio_fw-la not_o only_o agree_v with_o he_o in_o the_o number_n but_o give_v we_o also_o the_o name_n of_o they_o though_o where_o to_o find_v many_o of_o they_o it_o be_v hard_o to_o say_v that_o in_o each_o of_o these_o city_n be_v some_o temple_n dedicate_v to_o the_o pagan_a god_n that_o those_o temple_n afterward_o be_v employ_v to_o the_o use_n of_o christian_n and_o the_o revenue_n of_o they_o assign_v over_o to_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n have_v the_o concurrent_a testimony_n of_o approve_a author_n that_o be_v to_o say_v matthew_z of_o westminster_n out_o of_o gildas_n anno_fw-la 187._o rodolph_n de_fw-fr diceto_n cite_v by_o the_o learned_a primaâ_n of_o armach_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr primordiis_fw-la eccles._n brit._n cap._n 4._o gervaso_n of_o tilbury_n ibid._n cap._n 6._o and_o for_o the_o flamen_fw-la and_o archflamine_n they_o stand_v not_o only_o on_o the_o credit_n of_o jeffery_n of_o monmouth_n but_o of_o all_o our_o own_o writer_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o ancient_a bishopric_n even_o to_o polydore_n virgil._n nor_o want_v there_o many_o foreign_a writer_n who_o affirm_v the_o same_o chron._n beginning_n with_o martinus_n polonus_n who_o be_v esteem_v no_o friend_n to_o the_o popedom_n because_o of_o the_o story_n of_o pope_n jone_n which_o occur_v in_o his_o write_n may_v the_o rather_o be_v believe_v in_o the_o story_n of_o lucius_n and_o he_o agree_v with_o jeffery_n of_o monmouth_n in_o all_o part_n of_o the_o story_n as_o to_o the_o flamen_fw-la and_o archflamine_n as_o do_v also_o many_o other_o
king_n edward_n have_v no_o dominion_n over_o they_o can_v not_o impose_v a_o law_n upon_o they_o not_o be_v it_o probable_a that_o he_o shall_v borrow_v any_o of_o their_o law_n or_o impose_v they_o on_o his_o natural_a subject_n consider_v the_o antipathy_n and_o disaffection_n betwixt_o the_o nation_n there_o be_v indeed_o at_o that_o time_n in_o england_n three_o kind_n of_o law_n the_o first_o call_v dane-lage_a or_o the_o danish_a law_n prevail_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o east-angle_n and_o that_o of_o northumberland_n second_o saxon-lage_a use_v general_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o westsaxon_n east-saxons_a south-saxons_a and_o that_o of_o kent_n and_o three_o merceâ-lage_a extend_v over_o all_o the_o province_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o mercia_n as_o for_o the_o britan_n of_o cornwall_n and_o cumberland_n they_o have_v no_o distinct_a law_n for_o themselves_o as_o have_v those_o of_o wales_n but_o be_v govern_v by_o the_o law_n of_o that_o nation_n unto_o which_o they_o be_v subject_a by_o these_o three_o sort_n of_o law_n be_v these_o nation_n govern_v in_o their_o several_a and_o respective_a limit_n which_o be_v afterward_o reduce_v into_o one_o body_n and_o make_v common_a equal_o to_o all_o the_o subject_n do_v worthy_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o the_o common-law_n but_o second_o i_o dare_v not_o give_v the_o honour_n of_o this_o action_n to_o king_n edward_n the_o confessor_n the_o great_a justinian_n in_o this_o work_n be_v another_o edward_n called_z for_o distinction_n sake_n king_n edward_n the_o elder_a who_o begin_v his_o reign_n anno_fw-la 900._o almost_o 150_o year_n before_o this_o confessor_n to_o who_o our_o author_n have_v ascribe_v it_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o these_o law_n be_v suppress_v by_o the_o danish_a king_n who_o govern_v either_o in_o a_o arbitrary_a way_n or_o by_o the_o law_n of_o their_o own_o country_n they_o be_v revive_v and_o reinforce_v in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o edward_n from_o whence_o they_o have_v the_o name_n of_o edward_n the_o confessor_n law_n and_o by_o that_o name_n be_v sue_v and_o fight_v for_o in_o the_o time_n succeed_v of_o which_o more_o hereafter_o now_o as_o this_o work_n may_v be_v ascribe_v to_o his_o love_n to_o justice_n so_o from_o his_o piety_n his_o successor_n derive_v as_o great_a a_o benefit_n of_o cure_v the_o disease_n which_o from_o thence_o be_v call_v the_o king_n evil_a which_o some_o impute_v as_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o to_o secret_a and_o hide_a cause_n fol._n 145._o other_o ascribe_v it_o to_o the_o power_n of_o fancy_n and_o a_o exalt_a imagination_n among_o which_o other_o i_o may_v reckon_v our_o author_n for_o one_o he_o have_v not_o else_o so_o strong_o plead_v in_o defence_n thereof_o but_o certain_o what_o effect_n soever_o the_o strength_n of_o fancy_n and_o a_o exalt_a imagination_n as_n our_o author_n call_v it_o may_v produce_v in_o those_o of_o ripe_a year_n it_o can_v contribute_v nothing_o to_o the_o cure_n of_o child_n and_o i_o have_v see_v some_o child_n bring_v before_o the_o king_n by_o the_o hang_a sleeve_n some_o hang_n at_o their_o mother_n breast_n and_o other_o in_o the_o arm_n of_o their_o nurse_n all_o touch_v and_o cure_v without_o the_o help_n of_o any_o such_o fancy_n or_o imagination_n as_o our_o author_n speak_v of_o other_o less_a charitable_o condemn_v this_o cure_n as_o guilty_a of_o superstition_n quarrel_v at_o the_o circumstance_n and_o ceremony_n which_o be_v use_v and_o this_o they_o do_v say_v he_o ibid._n either_o displease_v at_o the_o collect_n consist_v of_o the_o first_o nine_o verse_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n john_n as_o whole_o improper_a and_o nothing_o relate_v to_o the_o occasion_n etc._n etc._n our_o author_n tell_v we_o more_o than_o once_o lib._n 11._o 167._o of_o his_o be_v a_o clerk_n of_o the_o convocation_n but_o i_o find_v by_o this_o that_o he_o never_o come_v so_o high_a as_o to_o be_v clerk_n of_o the_o closet_n which_o have_v he_o be_v he_o will_v not_o have_v mistake_v the_o gospel_n for_o a_o collect_v or_o touch_v upon_o that_o gospel_n which_o be_v less_o material_a without_o insist_v on_o the_o other_o which_o be_v more_o pertinent_a and_o proper_a to_o the_o work_n in_o hand_n or_o suffer_v the_o displease_a party_n to_o remain_v unsatisfied_a about_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n make_v by_o the_o royal_a hand_n on_o the_o place_n infect_v as_o it_o after_o follow_v when_o there_o be_v no_o such_o cross_v use_v in_o that_o sacred_a ceremony_n the_o king_n only_o gentle_o draw_v both_o his_o hand_n over_o the_o sore_a at_o the_o read_n of_o the_o first_o gospel_n but_o that_o both_o he_o and_o other_o may_v be_v satisfy_v in_o these_o particular_n i_o have_v think_v fit_a to_o lay_v down_o the_o whole_a form_n of_o prayer_n and_o reading_n use_v in_o the_o heal_n of_o that_o malady_n in_o this_o manner_n follow_v the_o form_n of_o the_o service_n at_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o king's-evil_a the_o first_o gospel_n be_v exact_o the_o same_o with_o that_o on_o ascension_n day_n at_o the_o touch_n of_o every_o infirm_a person_n these_o word_n be_v repeat_v they_o shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n on_o the_o sick_a and_o they_o shall_v recover_v the_o second_o gospel_n begin_v the_o first_o of_o st._n john_n and_o end_n at_o these_o word_n full_a of_o grace_n and_o truth_n at_o the_o put_v the_o angel_n about_o their_o neck_n be_v repeat_v that_o light_n be_v the_o true_a light_n which_o light_v every_o man_n that_o come_v into_o the_o world_n lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o christ_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o lord_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o our_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n hallow_a be_v thy_o name_n etc._n etc._n min._n o_o lord_n save_o thy_o servant_n an._n which_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o thou_o min._n send_v unto_o they_o help_v from_o above_o an._n and_o evermore_o mighty_o defend_v they_o min._n help_v we_o o_o god_n our_o saviour_n an._n and_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o name_n sake_n deliver_v we_o be_v merciful_a unto_o we_o sinner_n for_o thy_o name_n sake_n min._n o_o lord_n hear_v our_o prayer_n an._n and_o let_v our_o cry_n come_v unto_o thou_o the_o collect._n almighty_a god_n the_o eternal_a health_n of_o all_o such_o as_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o thou_o hear_v we_o we_o beseech_v thou_o on_o the_o behalf_n of_o these_o thy_o servant_n for_o who_o we_o call_v for_o thy_o merciful_a help_n that_o they_o receive_v health_n may_v give_v thanks_o ânto_fw-mi thou_o in_o thy_o holy_a church_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n amen_o the_o peace_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v the_o whole_a form_n against_o which_o nothing_o be_v object_v but_o the_o use_n of_o the_o word_n before_o mention_v at_o the_o put_n on_o of_o the_o angel_n the_o pertinency_n whereof_o may_v appear_v to_o any_o who_o consider_v that_o the_o light_n which_o be_v the_o true_a light_n and_o light_v every_o man_n which_o come_v into_o the_o world_n do_v not_o shine_v more_o visible_o at_o the_o least_o moâe_n comfortable_o upon_o the_o people_n then_o in_o the_o heal_n of_o âo_o many_o sick_a infirm_a and_o leprous_a person_n as_o do_v from_o time_n to_o time_n receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o it_o but_o it_o be_v time_n i_o shall_v proceed_v fol._n 148._o these_o choose_v harald_n to_o be_v king_n who_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n be_v not_o worth_a our_o derive_v of_o itâ_n much_o ãâã_d his_o rely_v on_o it_o a_o title_n not_o so_o despicable_a as_o our_o author_n make_v it_o nor_o much_o inferior_a unto_o that_o by_o which_o hiâ_n predecessor_n obtain_v the_o kingdom_n harald_n be_v âon_n to_o earl_n godwin_n the_o most_o potent_a man_n of_o all_o the_o sââxons_n by_o theyra_n the_o natural_a daughter_n of_o canutus_n the_o fiâst_n be_v consequent_o brother_n by_o the_o whole_a blood_n to_o harald_n harâagar_n and_o brother_n by_o the_o half_a blood_n to_o canutus_n the_o âecond_v the_o two_o last_o danish_n king_n of_o england_n in_o which_o respect_n be_v of_o saxon_a ancestry_n by_o his_o father_n and_o of_o the_o danish_a royal_a blood_n by_o his_o mother_n he_o may_v be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o fit_a person_n in_o that_o conjuncture_n to_o conâent_v both_o nation_n but_o whatsoever_o his_o title_n be_v it_o be_v undoubted_o better_a than_o that_o of_o the_o norman_a have_v either_o his_o success_n be_v answerable_a or_o his_o sword_n as_o good_a upon_o occasion_n of_o which_o conquest_n our_o author_n tell_v we_o that_o ibid._n this_o be_v the_o five_o time_n wherein_o the_o south_n of_o this_o island_n be_v conquer_v first_o by_o roman_n second_o by_o pict_n and_o scot_n three_o by_o saxon_n four_a by_o the_o dane_n and_o fifthlyâ_n by_o the_o norman_a but_o this_o i_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n
to_o say_v the_o title_n of_o earl_n of_o hereford_n which_o the_o duke_n request_v but_o so_o much_o of_o the_o land_n of_o those_o earl_n as_o have_v be_v former_o enjoy_v by_o the_o house_n of_o lancaster_n concern_v which_o we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o humphrey_n de_fw-fr bohun_n the_o last_o earl_n of_o hereford_n leave_v behind_o he_o two_o daughter_n only_o of_o which_o the_o elder_a call_v eleanor_n be_v marry_v to_o thomas_n of_o woodstock_n duke_n of_o gloster_n mary_n the_o other_o marry_v unto_o henry_n of_o bullenbrook_n earl_n of_o derby_n betwixt_o these_o two_o the_o estate_n be_v part_v the_o one_o moiety_n which_o draw_v after_o it_o the_o title_n of_o hereford_n fall_v to_o henry_n earl_n of_o derby_n the_o other_o which_o draw_v after_o it_o the_o office_n of_o constable_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o gloucester_n but_o the_o duke_n of_o gloucester_n be_v dead_a and_o his_o estate_n come_v in_o fire_n unto_o his_o daughter_n who_o be_v not_o able_a to_o contend_v henry_n the_o five_o force_v she_o unto_o a_o sub-division_n lay_v one_o half_a of_o her_o just_a partage_n to_o the_o other_o moiety_n but_o the_o issue_n of_o henry_n of_o bullenbrook_n be_v quite_o extinct_a in_o the_o person_n of_o edward_n prince_n of_o wales_n son_n of_o henry_n the_o six_o these_o three_o part_n of_o the_o land_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o hereford_n have_v be_v former_o incorporate_v into_o the_o duchy_n of_o lancaster_n remain_v in_o possession_n of_o the_o crown_n but_o be_v conceive_v by_o this_o duke_n to_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o be_v the_o direct_a heir_n of_o anne_n daughter_n of_o thomas_n duke_n of_o gloucester_n and_o consequent_o the_o direct_a heir_n also_o of_o the_o house_n of_o hereford_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o demand_n nor_o do_v i_o find_v that_o he_o make_v any_o suit_n for_o the_o office_n of_o constable_n or_o that_o he_o need_v so_o to_o do_v he_o be_v then_o constable_n of_o england_n as_o his_o son_n edward_n the_o last_o duke_n of_o buckingham_n of_o that_o family_n be_v after_o he_o fol._n 199._o at_o last_o the_o come_n in_o of_o the_o lord_n stanley_n with_o three_o thousand_o fresh_a man_n decide_v the_o controversy_n on_o the_o earl_n side_n our_o author_n be_v out_o in_o this_o also_o it_o be_v not_o the_o lord_n stanley_n but_o his_o brother_n sir_n william_n stanley_n who_o come_v in_o so_o seasonable_o and_o thereby_o turn_v the_o scale_n and_o change_v the_o fortune_n of_o the_o day_n for_o which_o service_n he_o be_v afterward_o make_v lord_n chamberlain_n of_o the_o new_a king_n household_n and_o advance_v to_o great_a riches_n and_o estate_n but_o final_o behead_v by_o that_o very_a king_n for_o who_o and_o to_o who_o he_o have_v do_v the_o same_o but_o the_o king_n look_v upon_o this_o action_n with_o another_o eye_n and_o therefore_o when_o the_o merit_n of_o this_o service_n be_v interpose_v to_o mitigate_v the_o king_n displeasure_n and_o preserve_v the_o man_n the_o king_n remember_v very_o shrewd_o that_o as_o he_o come_v soon_o enough_o to_o win_v the_o victory_n so_o he_o stay_v long_o enough_o to_o have_v lose_v it_o animadversion_n on_o the_o five_o and_o six_o book_n of_o the_o church_n history_n of_o britain_n relate_v to_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o we_o be_v now_o come_v to_o the_o busy_a time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o in_o which_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n be_v much_o diminish_v though_o not_o reduce_v to_o such_o ill_a term_n as_o our_o author_n make_v it_o we_o have_v he_o here_o lay_v his_o foundation_n to_o overthrow_v that_o little_a which_o be_v leave_v of_o the_o church_n right_n his_o superstructure_n we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o time_n ensue_v more_o seasonable_a for_o the_o practice_n of_o that_o authority_n which_o in_o this_o five_o book_n he_o hammer_v only_o in_o the_o speculation_n but_o first_o we_o will_v begin_v with_o such_o animadversion_n as_o relate_v unto_o this_o time_n and_o story_n as_o they_o come_v in_o our_o way_n leave_v such_o principle_n and_o position_n as_o concern_v the_o church_n to_o the_o close_a of_o all_o where_o we_o shall_v draw_v they_o all_o together_o that_o our_o discourse_n and_o observation_n thereupon_o may_v come_v before_o the_o reader_n without_o interruption_n and_o the_o first_o thing_n i_o meet_v with_o be_v a_o fault_n of_o omission_n dr._n newlen_n who_o succeed_v dr._n jackson_n in_o the_o presidentship_n of_o corpus_fw-la christi_fw-la college_n in_o oxford_n anno_fw-la 1640._o by_o a_o free_a election_n and_o in_o a_o statuteable_a way_n be_v leave_v out_o of_o our_o author_n catalogue_n of_o the_o precedent_n of_o c._n c._n c._n in_o oxford_n fol._n 166._o and_o dr._n stanton_n who_o câme_v in_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o visitor_n above_o eight_o year_n after_o be_v place_v therein_o which_o i_o think_v fit_a though_o otherwise_o of_o no_o great_a moment_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o i_o may_v do_v the_o honest_a man_n that_o right_a which_o our_o author_n do_v not_o fol._n 168._o king_n henry_n endeavour_v a_o uniformity_n of_o grammar_n all_o over_o his_o dominion_n that_o so_o youth_n though_o change_v their_o schoolmaster_n may_v keep_v their_o learning_n that_o this_o be_v endeavour_v by_o king_n henry_n and_o at_o last_o enâoyned_v i_o shall_v easy_o grant_v but_o then_o our_o author_n shall_v have_v tell_v we_o if_o at_o least_o he_o know_v it_o that_o the_o ãâã_d ãâã_d thereof_o procee_v fâom_o the_o convocation_n in_o the_o yeaâ_n 1530._o in_o which_o complaint_n be_v make_v quod_fw-la multiplex_fw-la &_o varius_fw-la in_o scholis_fw-la grammaticalibus_fw-la modus_fw-la esset_fw-la ãâã_d etc._n etc._n that_o the_o multiplicity_n of_o grammar_n do_v much_o he_o to_o learning_n it_o be_v think_v meet_a by_o the_o prelate_n and_o clergy_n then_o assemble_v ut_fw-la una_fw-la &_o eadem_fw-la edatur_fw-la formula_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z singula_fw-la schola_fw-la grammaâicals_n per_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z 1530._o that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o one_o only_o ãâ¦ã_z that_o within_o few_o year_n after_o it_o be_v enjoin_v by_o the_o king_n proclamation_n to_o be_v use_v in_o all_o the_o school_n thoughout_v the_o kingdom_n but_o here_o we_o be_v to_o note_v withal_o that_o our_o author_n anticipate_v this_o business_n place_v it_o in_o the_o eleven_o year_n of_o this_o â_z anno_fw-la 1519._o whereas_o the_o convocation_n take_v not_o this_o into_o consideration_n till_o the_o eight_o of_o march_n anno_fw-la 1530._o and_o certain_o will_v not_o have_v meddle_v in_o it_o then_o if_o the_o king_n have_v settle_v and_o enjoin_v it_o so_o long_o before_o fol._n 168._o otherâardiner_n âardiner_z gather_v the_o flower_n make_v the_o collection_n though_o king_n henry_n have_v the_o honour_n to_o wear_v the_o posy_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o the_o make_n of_o the_o king_n book_n against_o martin_n luther_n be_v by_o some_o popish_a writer_n ascribe_v to_o dr._n john_n fisher_n than_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n but_o this_o cauââ_n be_v not_o make_v till_o after_o this_o king_n have_v reâected_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o consequent_o the_o less_o credit_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o it_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o his_o father_n king_n henry_n the_o seven_o design_v he_o for_o the_o archbishopric_a of_o canterbury_n and_o to_o that_o end_n cause_v he_o to_o be_v train_v up_o in_o all_o part_n of_o learning_n which_o may_v enable_v ãâã_d for_o that_o place_n but_o his_o elder_a brother_n prince_n arthur_n dâing_n and_o himself_o succeed_v in_o the_o crown_n though_o he_o have_v lay_v aside_o the_o thought_n of_o be_v a_o priest_n he_o can_v not_o but_o retain_v that_o learning_n which_o he_o have_v acquire_v and_o reckon_v it_o among_o the_o fair_a flower_n which_o adorn_v his_o diadem_n too_o great_a a_o clerk_n he_o be_v to_o be_v call_v beauclerk_n junior_a as_o if_o he_o be_v as_o short_a in_o learning_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o first_o who_o common_o they_o call_v beauclerk_n as_o he_o be_v in_o time_n though_o so_o our_o author_n will_v fain_o have_v it_o hist._n cam._n p._n 2_o 3._o a_o little_a learning_n go_v a_o great_a way_n in_o those_o early_a day_n which_o in_o this_o king_n will_v have_v make_v no_o shewâ_n in_o who_o ââme_n both_o the_o art_n and_o language_n begin_v to_o flourish_v and_o if_o our_o author_n do_v not_o suspect_v this_o king_n lack_n of_o learning_n he_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o suspect_v his_o lack_n of_o ãâã_d the_o work_n be_v small_a the_o glory_n great_a and_o help_n enough_o at_o hand_n if_o he_o want_v any_o but_o of_o this_o enough_o fol._n 196._o which_o when_o finish_v as_o whitehall_n hampton-court_n etc._n etc._n he_o either_o free_o give_v to_o the_o king_n or_o exchange_v they_o on_o very_o reasonable_a consideration_n that_o hampton_n court_n be_v either_o free_o give_v by_o
pass_n of_o the_o statute_n of_o praemunire_n be_v without_o any_o further_a ratification_n obligatory_a to_o all_o subject_v to_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o also_o of_o such_o convocation_n as_o have_v be_v call_v between_o the_o pass_n of_o the_o statute_n of_o praemunire_n and_o the_o act_n for_o submission_n that_o they_o make_v canon_n which_o be_v bind_v although_o none_o other_o than_o synodical_a authority_n do_v confirm_v the_o same_o upon_o whiâââremisses_n i_o shall_v not_o fear_v to_o raise_v this_o syllogism_n viz_o that_o power_n which_o the_o clergy_n have_v in_o their_o convocation_n before_o their_o submission_n to_o the_o king_n to_o bind_v the_o subject_n by_o their_o canon_n and_o constitution_n without_o any_o further_a ratification_n than_o own_o synodical_a authority_n the_o same_o they_o have_v when_o the_o king_n power_n signify_v in_o his_o royal_a assent_n be_v add_v to_o they_o but_o the_o clergy_n by_o our_o author_n own_o confession_n have_v power_n in_o their_o convocation_n before_o their_o submission_n to_o the_o king_n to_o bind_v the_o subject_a by_o their_o canon_n and_o constitution_n without_o any_o further_a ratification_n than_o their_o own_o synodical_a authority_n ergo_fw-la they_o have_v the_o same_o power_n to_o bind_v the_o subject_n when_o the_o king_n power_n signify_v by_o the_o royal_a assent_n be_v add_v to_o they_o the_o minor_a be_v grant_v by_o our_o author_n as_o before_o be_v show_v the_o major_n be_v only_o to_o be_v prove_v and_o for_o the_o proof_n hereof_o i_o be_o to_o put_v the_o reader_n in_o mind_n of_o a_o petition_n or_o remonstrance_n exhibit_v to_o the_o king_n by_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o anno_fw-la 1532._o in_o which_o they_o show_v themselves_o aggrieve_v that_o the_o clergy_n of_o this_o realm_n shall_v act_v authoritative_o and_o supreme_o in_o the_o convocation_n and_o they_o in_o parliament_n do_v nothing_o but_o as_o it_o be_v confirm_v and_o ratify_v by_o the_o royal_a assent_n by_o which_o it_o seem_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o then_o desire_v by_o the_o house_n ãâã_d âommons_n but_o that_o the_o convocation_n shall_v be_v bring_v down_o to_o the_o same_o level_n with_o the_o house_n of_o parliament_n and_o that_o their_o act_n and_o constitution_n shall_v not_o bind_v the_o subject_a as_o before_o in_o their_o good_n and_o possession_n until_o they_o be_v confirm_v and_o ratify_v by_o the_o regal_a power_n the_o answer_n unto_o which_o remonstrance_n be_v draw_v up_o by_o dr._n gardiner_n then_o new_o make_v bishop_n of_o winchester_n and_o allow_v of_o by_o both_o house_n of_o convocation_n be_v by_o they_o present_v to_o the_o king_n but_o the_o king_n not_o satisfy_v with_o this_o answer_n ââsolves_v to_o bring_v they_o to_o his_o bent_n leât_v else_o perhaps_o they_o may_v have_v act_v something_o to_o the_o hindrance_n of_o his_o divorce_n which_o be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o agitation_n and_o therefore_o on_o the_o 10_o of_o may_v he_o send_v a_o paper_n to_o they_o by_o dr._n fox_n after_o bishop_n of_o hereford_n in_o which_o it_o be_v peremptory_o require_v that_o no_o constitution_n or_o ordinance_n shall_v be_v hereafter_o by_o the_o clergy_n enact_v promulge_v or_o put_v in_o execution_n unless_o the_o king_n highness_n do_v approve_v the_o same_o by_o his_o high_a authority_n and_o royal_a assent_n and_o his_o advice_n and_o favour_n be_v also_o interpon_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o every_o such_o constitution_n among_o his_o highness_n subject_n and_o though_o the_o clergy_n on_o the_o receipt_n of_o this_o paper_n remove_v first_o to_o the_o chapel_n of_o st._n katherine_n and_o after_o unto_o that_o of_o st._n dunstan_n to_o consult_v about_o it_o yet_o find_v they_o no_o saint_n able_a to_o inspiâe_v they_o with_o a_o resolution_n contrary_n to_o the_o king_n desire_n and_o therefore_o upon_o the_o wednesday_n follow_v be_v the_o 15_o of_o the_o same_o month_n they_o make_v their_o absolute_a submission_n bind_v themselves_o in_o verbo_fw-la sacerdotii_fw-la not_o to_o make_v or_o execute_v any_o canon_n or_o other_o synodical_a constitution_n but_o as_o they_o be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n enable_v by_o the_o king_n authority_n but_o this_o submission_n be_v make_v unto_o the_o king_n in_o his_o single_a person_n and_o not_o as_o in_o conjunction_n with_o his_o house_n of_o parliament_n can_v neither_o bring_v the_o convocation_n under_o the_o command_n of_o parliament_n nor_o render_v they_o obnoxious_a to_o the_o power_n thereof_o as_o indeed_o it_o do_v not_o but_o to_o the_o contrary_a hereof_o it_o be_v say_v by_o our_o author_n that_o fol._n 194._o he_o viz._n the_o king_n by_o the_o advice_n and_o consent_n of_o his_o clergy_n in_o convocation_n and_o great_a council_n in_o parliament_n resolve_v to_o reform_v the_o church_n under_o his_o inspection_n from_o gross_a abuse_n creep_v into_o it_o to_o this_o i_o need_v no_o other_o answer_n then_o our_o author_n himself_o who_o though_o in_o this_o place_n he_o make_v the_o parliament_n to_o be_v join_v in_o commission_n with_o the_o convocation_n as_o if_o a_o joint_a agent_n in_o that_o great_a business_n of_o reform_v the_o church_n yet_o in_o another_o place_n he_o tell_v we_o another_o tale_n for_o fol._n 188._o it_o will_v appear_v say_v he_o and_o i_o can_v tell_v from_o who_o he_o say_v it_o upon_o serious_a examination_n that_o there_o be_v nothing_o do_v in_o the_o reformation_n of_o religion_n save_o what_o be_v act_v by_o the_o clergy_n in_o their_o convocation_n or_o ground_v on_o some_o act_n of_o they_o precedent_n to_o it_o with_o the_o advice_n counsel_n and_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o most_o eminent_a churchman_n confirm_v upon_o the_o postfact_n and_o not_o otherwise_o by_o the_o civil_a sanction_n according_a to_o the_o usage_n of_o the_o best_a and_o happy_a time_n of_o christianity_n so_o then_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v act_v chief_o by_o the_o king_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o clergy_n in_o their_o convocation_n the_o confirmation_n on_o the_o post-fact_n by_o the_o king_n in_o parliament_n and_o that_o by_o his_o leave_n not_o in_o all_o the_o act_n and_o particular_n of_o it_o but_o in_o some_o few_o only_a for_o which_o consult_v the_o tract_n entitle_v the_o way_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n now_o as_o our_o author_n make_v the_o parliament_n a_o joint_a assistant_n with_o the_o king_n in_o the_o reformation_n so_o he_o confer_v on_o parliament_n the_o supreme_a power_n of_o ratify_v and_o confirm_v all_o synodical_a acts._n fol._n 199._o the_o parliament_n say_v he_o do_v notify_v and_o declare_v that_o ecclesiastical_a power_n to_o be_v in_o the_o king_n which_o the_o pope_n have_v former_o unjust_o invade_v yet_o so_o that_o they_o reserve_v to_o themselves_o the_o confirm_a power_n of_o all_o canon_n ecclesiastical_a so_o that_o the_o person_n or_o property_n of_o refuser_n shall_v not_o be_v subject_v to_o temporal_a penalty_n without_o consent_n of_o parliament_n but_o certain_o there_o âis_n no_o such_o matter_n in_o that_o act_n of_o parliament_n in_o which_o the_o submission_n of_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n ground_v thereupon_o be_v notify_v and_o record_v to_o succeed_a time_n nor_o any_o such_o reservation_n to_o themselves_o of_o a_o confirm_a power_n as_o our_o author_n speak_v of_o in_o any_o act_n of_o parliament_n i_o can_v know_o and_o bold_o say_v it_o from_o that_o time_n to_o this_o have_v there_o be_v any_o such_o privilege_n any_o such_o reservation_n as_o be_v here_o declare_v their_o power_n in_o confirm_v ecclesiastical_a canon_n have_v be_v lord_n paramount_n to_o the_o king_n who_o can_v have_v act_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o as_o he_o be_v enable_v by_o his_o house_n of_o parliament_n nor_o be_v this_o only_a a_o new_a and_o unheard_a of_o paradox_n a_o heterodoxie_n as_o i_o may_v call_v it_o in_o point_n of_o law_n but_o plain_o contrary_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n from_o that_o time_n to_o this_o there_o be_v no_o synodical_a canon_n or_o constitution_n i_o dare_v as_o bold_o say_v this_o too_o confirm_v in_o parliament_n or_o any_o otherwise_o ratify_v then_o by_o the_o superad_n of_o the_o royal_a assent_n for_o proof_n whereof_o look_v we_o no_o further_a than_o the_o canon_n of_o 603_o and_o 640_o confirm_v by_o the_o two_o king_n respective_o and_o without_o any_o other_o authority_n concur_v with_o they_o in_o these_o follow_a word_n viz._n we_o have_v therefore_o for_o we_o our_o heir_n and_o lawful_a successor_n of_o our_o especial_a grace_n certain_a knowledge_n and_o mere_a motion_n give_v and_o by_o these_o present_n do_v give_v our_o royal_a assent_n according_a to_o the_o foâm_n of_o the_o say_a statute_n or_o act_n of_o parliament_n aforesaid_a to_o all_o and_o every_o of_o
his_o very_a book_n fol._n 283._o which_o be_v this_o that_o follow_v once_o say_v he_o it_o be_v in_o my_o mind_n to_o set_v down_o a_o catalogue_n easy_a to_o do_v and_o useful_a when_o do_v of_o such_o house_n of_o cistercian_n templar_n and_o hospitaller_n which_o be_v found_v since_o the_o lateran_n council_n yet_o go_v under_o the_o general_a notion_n of_o tithe-free_a to_o the_o great_a injury_n of_o the_o church_n but_o since_o on_o second_o thought_n i_o conceive_v it_o better_a to_o let_v it_o alone_o as_o not_o sure_a on_o such_o discovery_n of_o any_o blessing_n from_o such_o minister_n which_o shall_v gain_v but_o certain_a of_o many_o curse_n from_o such_o layman_n who_o shall_v lose_v thereby_o so_o he_o but_o i_o have_v hear_v it_o for_o a_o usual_a say_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o four_o of_o france_n that_o he_o that_o fear_v the_o pope_n curse_n the_o reproach_n of_o discontent_a people_n and_o the_o frown_n of_o his_o mistress_n shall_v never_o sleep_v a_o quiet_a hour_n in_o his_o bed_n and_o so_o much_o for_o that_o fol._n 357._o but_o this_o be_v do_v without_o any_o great_a cost_n to_o the_o crown_n only_o by_o alter_v the_o property_n of_o the_o place_n from_o a_o late_o make_v cathedral_n to_o a_o abbey_n our_o author_n speak_v this_o of_o the_o church_n of_o westminster_n which_o though_o it_o suffer_v many_o change_n yet_o have_v it_o no_o such_o change_n as_o our_o author_n speak_v of_o that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o a_o cathedral_n to_o a_o abbey_n without_o any_o other_o alteration_n which_o come_v in_o between_o for_o when_o the_o monastery_n be_v dissolve_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o an._n 1539._o it_o be_v make_v a_o deanery_n will._n benson_n be_v the_o first_o dean_n in_o the_o year_n 1541._o he_o make_v it_o a_o episcopal_n see_v or_o cathedral_n church_n and_o place_v thomas_n thurlby_n the_o first_o bishop_n there_o but_o thurlby_n be_v remove_v to_o norwich_n anno_fw-la 1550._o the_o bishopric_n be_v suppress_v by_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o and_o the_o church_n cease_v from_o be_v cathedral_n continue_v as_o a_o deanery_n only_o till_o the_o 21._o of_o november_n 1557._o at_o what_o time_n dr._n hugh_n weston_n the_o then_o dean_n thereof_o unwilling_o remove_v to_o windsor_n make_v room_n for_o fecknaâ_n and_o his_o monk_n and_o so_o restore_v it_o once_o again_o to_o the_o state_n of_o a_o abbey_n as_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o fol._n 359._o nor_o can_v i_o find_v in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n any_o particular_a statute_n wherein_o as_o in_o the_o râign_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o these_o order_n be_v nominatim_fw-la suppress_v etc._n etc._n but_o first_o the_o several_a order_n of_o religious_a person_n be_v not_o suppress_v nominatim_fw-la except_o that_o of_o st._n johns_n by_o a_o statute_n in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o second_o if_o there_o be_v no_o such_o statute_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o because_o those_o house_n have_v no_o legal_a settlement_n as_o it_o after_o follow_v queen_n mary_n be_v vest_v with_o a_o power_n of_o grant_v mortmain_n and_o consequent_o of_o sound_v these_o religious_a house_n in_o a_o legal_a way_n three_o there_o may_v be_v such_o a_o statute_n though_o our_o author_n never_o have_v the_o good_a luck_n to_o see_v it_o and_o yet_o for_o want_v of_o such_o good_a luck_n i_o find_v he_o apt_a enough_o to_o think_v there_o be_v no_o such_o statute_n et_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la invenit_fw-la usquam_fw-la esse_fw-la putat_fw-la nusquam_fw-la in_o the_o poet_n language_n and_o such_o a_o statute_n as_o he_o speak_v of_o there_o be_v indeed_o mention_v and_o relate_v to_o in_o the_o charter_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n for_o sound_v the_o collegiate_n church_n of_o st._n peter_n in_o westminster_n but_o be_v a_o unprint_v statute_n and_o of_o private_a use_n it_o easy_o may_v escape_v our_o author_n diligence_n though_o it_o do_v not_o camden_n who_o be_v either_o better_o âighted_v 4â9_n or_o more_o concern_v have_v a_o view_n thereof_o for_o tell_v âs_n how_o the_o monk_n with_o their_o abbot_n have_v be_v set_v in_o possession_n again_o by_o queen_n mary_n he_o after_o add_v that_o they_o within_o a_o while_n after_o be_v cast_v out_o by_o authority_n of_o parliament_n the_o most_o virtuous_a queen_n elizabeth_n convert_v it_o into_o a_o collegiate_n church_n or_o rather_o into_o a_o seminary_n or_o nurse_n garden_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n fol._n 369._o jesuit_n the_o last_o and_o new_a of_o all_o order_n the_o new_a if_o the_o last_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n of_o that_o but_o the_o last_o they_o be_v not_o the_o oratorian_n as_o they_o call_v they_o be_v of_o a_o late_a brood_n the_o jesuit_n found_v by_o ignatius_n loyola_n a_o spaniard_n and_o confirm_v by_o pope_n paul_n the_o thiâd_o anno_fw-la 1540_o the_o oratorian_n found_v by_o philip_n meriâ_n a_o florentine_a and_o confirm_v by_o pope_n pius_n the_o four_o anno_fw-la 1564._o by_o which_o account_n these_o oratorian_n be_v young_a brethren_n to_o the_o jesuit_n by_o the_o space_n of_o four_o and_o twenty_o year_n and_o consequent_o the_o jesuit_n not_o the_o last_o and_o new_a of_o religious_a order_n animadversion_n on_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o book_n of_o the_o church_n history_n of_o britain_n contain_v the_o reign_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o and_o queen_n mary_n we_o be_v now_o come_v unto_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o which_o our_o author_n pass_v light_o over_o though_o very_o full_a of_o action_n and_o great_a alteration_n and_o heâe_v the_o first_o thing_n which_o i_o meet_v with_o be_v a_o unnecessary_a quaere_fw-la which_o he_o make_v about_o the_o injunction_n of_o this_o king_n among_o which_o we_o find_v one_o concern_v the_o religious_a keep_n of_o the_o holiday_n in_o the_o close_a whereof_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o all_o people_n in_o time_n of_o harvest_n to_o labour_n upon_o holy_a and_o festival_n day_n and_o save_v that_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v send_v and_o that_o scrupulosity_n to_o abstain_v from_o work_v on_o those_o day_n do_v grievous_o offend_v god_n our_o author_n heâupon_o make_v this_o quaere_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v fol._n 375._o whether_o in_o the_o 24_o injunction_n labour_v in_o time_n of_o harvest_n upon_o holiday_n and_o festival_n relate_v not_o only_o to_o those_o of_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n as_o dedicate_v to_o saint_n or_o be_v inclusive_a of_o the_o lordsday_n also_o be_v not_o our_o author_n a_o great_a zealot_n for_o the_o lords-day-sabbath_n and_o âââdious_a to_o entitle_v it_o to_o some_o antiquity_n we_o have_v not_o meet_v with_o such_o a_o quaere_fw-la the_o law_n and_o practice_n of_o those_o time_n make_v this_o plain_a enough_o for_o in_o the_o statute_n of_o 5_o and_o 6_o of_o edward_n the_o six_o c._n 3._o the_o name_n and_o number_n of_o the_o holiday_n be_v first_o lay_v down_o that_o be_v to_o say_v all_o sunday_n in_o the_o year_n the_o feast_n of_o the_o circumcision_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n of_o the_o epiphany_n etc._n etc._n with_o all_o the_o rest_n still_o keep_v and_o there_o name_v particular_o it_o be_v thus_o enact_v viz._n that_o it_o shall_v and_o may_v be_v lawful_a to_o every_o husbandman_n labourer_n fisherman_n and_o to_o all_o and_o every_o other_o person_n and_o person_n of_o what_o estate_n degree_n or_o condition_n he_o or_o they_o be_v upon_o the_o holiday_n aforesaid_a in_o harvest_n or_o at_o any_o other_o time_n in_o the_o year_n when_o necessity_n shall_v so_o require_v to_o labour_v ride_v fish_n or_o work_v any_o kind_n of_o ãâã_d at_o their_o free-wil_n and_o pleasure_n any_o thing_n in_o this_o act_n to_o the_o contrary_a notwithstanding_o the_o law_n be_v such_o there_o be_v no_o question_n to_o be_v make_v in_o point_n of_o practice_n nor_o consequent_o of_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o king_n injunction_n for_o further_o open_v of_o which_o truth_n we_o find_v in_o sir_n john_n haywoods_n history_n of_o this_o king_n that_o not_o the_o country_n only_o but_o the_o court_n be_v indulge_v the_o liberty_n of_o attend_v but_o ness_n on_o that_o day_n it_o be_v order_v by_o the_o king_n among_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o council_n shall_v upon_o sunday_n attend_v the_o public_a affair_n of_o the_o realm_n 353._o dispatch_v answer_n to_o letter_n for_o good_a order_n of_o the_o state_n and_o make_v full_a dispatch_n of_o all_o thing_n conclude_v the_o week_n before_o provide_v that_o they_o be_v present_a at_o common_a prayer_n and_o that_o on_o every_o sunday_n night_n the_o king_n secretary_n shall_v deliver_v he_o a_o memorial_n of_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v to_o be_v debate_v by_o the_o privy_a council_n in_o the_o week_n ensue_v which_o order_n have_v our_o author_n
katheriâe_n parr_n the_o widow_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o and_o wife_n unto_o sir_n thomas_n seimor_n the_o lord_n here_o mention_v be_v general_o character_v for_o a_o lady_n of_o so_o meek_a a_o nature_n as_o not_o to_o contribute_v any_o thing_n towards_o his_o destruction_n have_v the_o duchess_n of_o somerset_n be_v less_o impetious_a than_o she_o be_v or_o possess_v but_o of_o one_o half_a of_o that_o aequanimity_n which_o carry_v queen_n katherine_n off_o in_o all_o time_n of_o her_o trouble_n this_o lord_n may_v have_v live_v happy_o in_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o lady_n and_o go_v in_o peace_n unto_o the_o grave_n we_o find_v the_o like_a match_n to_o have_v be_v make_v between_o another_o katherine_n the_o widow_n of_o another_o henry_n and_o owen_n tudor_n a_o private_a gentleman_n of_o wales_n prosperous_a and_o comfortable_a to_o they_o both_o though_o owen_n be_v inferior_a to_o sir_n thomas_n seimor_n both_o in_o birth_n and_o quality_n and_o katherine_n of_o valois_n daughter_n to_o charles_n the_o six_o of_o france_n far_o more_o superior_a in_o her_o blood_n to_o queen_n katherine_n parr_n the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v also_o of_o the_o marriage_n of_o adeliza_n daughter_n of_o geofry_n earl_n of_o lâvain_n and_o duke_n of_o brabant_n and_o widow_n to_o king_n henry_n the_o first_o marry_v to_o william_n de_fw-fr albeney_n a_o noble_a gentleman_n to_o who_o she_o bring_v the_o castle_n and_o honour_n of_o arundel_n confer_v upon_o she_o by_o the_o king_n her_o former_a husband_n continue_v in_o the_o possession_n of_o their_o posterity_n though_o in_o several_a family_n to_o this_o very_a day_n derive_v by_o the_o heir_n general_a from_o this_o house_n of_o albeney_n to_o that_o of_o the_o fitz-âlans_a and_o from_o they_o to_o the_o howard_n the_o now_o earl_n thereof_o many_o more_o example_n of_o which_o kind_a fortunate_a and_o successful_a to_o each_o party_n may_v be_v easy_o âound_v be_v it_o worth_a the_o while_n fol._n 421._o this_o barren_a convocation_n be_v entitle_v the_o parent_n of_o those_o article_n of_o religion_n forty_o two_o in_o number_n which_o be_v print_v with_o this_o preface_n articuli_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o synodo_fw-la londinensi_fw-la etc._n etc._n our_o author_n here_o be_v guilty_a of_o a_o great_a crime_n then_o that_o of_o scandalum_fw-la magnatum_fw-la make_v king_n edward_n the_o six_o of_o pious_a memory_n no_o better_a than_o a_o impious_a and_o lewd_a impostor_n for_o if_o the_o convocation_n of_o this_o year_n be_v barren_a as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v it_o can_v neither_o be_v the_o parent_n of_o those_o article_n nor_o of_o the_o short_a catechism_n which_o be_v print_v with_o they_o countenance_v by_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n preâixt_v before_o it_o for_o first_o the_o title_n to_o the_o article_n run_v thus_o at_o large_a viz._n articuli_fw-la de_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o synodo_fw-la londinensi_fw-la anno_fw-la 1552_o inter_fw-la episcopos_fw-la &_o alios_fw-la eruditos_fw-la viros_fw-la convenerat_fw-la ad_fw-la tollendam_fw-la opinionum_fw-la dissensionem_fw-la &_o consensum_fw-la verae_fw-la religionis_fw-la firmandum_fw-la regius_fw-la authoritate_fw-la in_o lucem_fw-la editi_fw-la which_o title_n none_o dare_v have_v adventure_v to_o set_v before_o they_o have_v they_o not_o real_o be_v the_o product_n of_o that_o convocation_n second_o the_o king_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o have_v any_o such_o jealousy_n at_o that_o time_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o clergy_n but_o that_o he_o may_v trust_v they_o with_o a_o power_n to_o meddle_v with_o matter_n of_o religion_n which_o be_v the_o only_a argument_n our_o author_n bring_v against_o those_o article_n this_o convocation_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o six_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n when_o most_o of_o the_o episcopal_a see_v and_o parochial_a church_n be_v fill_v with_o man_n agreeable_a to_o his_o desiâes_n and_o general_o conformable_a to_o the_o form_n of_o worship_n theâ_n by_o law_n establish_v thiâdly_o the_o church_n of_o england_n for_o the_o first_o five_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n retain_v these_o article_n and_o no_o other_o as_o the_o public_a tendry_n of_o the_o church_n in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n which_o certain_o she_o have_v not_o do_v have_v they_o be_v recommend_v to_o she_o by_o a_o less_o authority_n than_o a_o convocation_n four_o and_o lasâly_o we_o have_v the_o testimony_n of_o our_o author_n against_o himself_o who_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o catechism_n above_o mention_v that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o sanâe_a extraction_n with_o the_o book_n of_o article_n add_v afterwards_o that_o be_v first_o compose_v by_o a_o single_a person_n it_o be_v peruse_v and_o allow_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o learned_a man_n understand_v it_o the_o convocation_n and_o by_o royal_a authority_n commend_v to_o all_o subject_a and_o command_v to_o all_o schoolmaster_n to_o teach_v it_o their_o scholar_n so_o that_o this_o catechism_n be_v allow_v by_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o learned_a man_n in_o the_o convocation_n and_o the_o article_n be_v say_v to_o be_v of_o the_o same_o extraction_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v thereupon_o that_o these_o article_n have_v no_o other_o parent_n than_o this_o convocation_n the_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o record_n of_o convocation_n during_o this_o king_n whole_a reign_n and_o the_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n mary_n be_v very_o imperfect_a and_o defective_a most_o of_o they_o lose_v and_o among_o other_o those_o of_o this_o present_a year_n and_o yet_o one_o may_v conclude_v as_o strong_o that_o my_o mother_n die_v childless_a because_o my_o christen_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o parish_n register_n as_o that_o the_o convocation_n of_o this_o year_n be_v barren_a because_o the_o act_n and_o article_n of_o it_o be_v not_o enter_v in_o the_o journal_n book_n the_o eight_o book_n or_o the_o reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n we_o next_o proceed_v unto_o the_o short_a but_o troublesome_a reign_n of_o queen_n mary_n in_o which_o the_o first_o thing_n ãâã_d occur_v be_v âol_n 1._o but_o the_o commons_o of_o england_n who_o for_o many_o yeââs_v together_o have_v con_v loyalty_n by-heart_n out_o of_o the_o staâââe_n of_o the_o succession_n be_v so_o perfect_a in_o their_o lesson_n that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v put_v out_o of_o it_o by_o this_o new_a start_v design_n in_o which_o i_o be_o to_o note_v these_o thing_n first_o that_o he_o make_v the_o loyalty_n of_o the_o commons_o of_o england_n not_o to_o depend_v upon_o the_o primogeniture_n of_o their_o prince_n but_o on_o the_o statute_n of_o succession_n and_o then_o the_o object_n of_o that_o loyalty_n must_v not_o be_v the_o king_n but_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n by_o which_o they_o be_v direct_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o next_o successor_n and_o then_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o parliament_n to_o dispose_v of_o the_o kingdom_n as_o they_o please_v the_o people_n loyalty_n be_v tie_v to_o such_o disposition_n second_o that_o the_o statute_n of_o succession_n have_v be_v so_o many_o and_o so_o contrary_a to_o one_o another_o that_o the_o common_a people_n can_v not_o ready_o tell_v which_o to_o trust_v to_o and_o for_o the_o last_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o king_n last_o will_v and_o testament_n so_o late_o make_v and_o know_v unto_o so_o few_o of_o the_o commons_o that_o they_o have_v neither_o opportunity_n to_o see_v it_o nor_o time_n to_o con_v the_o same_o by_o heart_n nor_o three_o be_v the_o commons_o so_o perfect_a in_o this_o lesson_n of_o loyalty_n or_o have_v so_o fix_v it_o in_o their_o heart_n but_o that_o they_o be_v willing_a to_o forget_v it_o within_o little_a time_n and_o take_v out_o such_o new_a lesson_n of_o disobedience_n and_o disloyalty_n as_o wyatt_n and_o his_o partisan_n do_v preach_v unto_o they_o and_o final_o they_o have_v not_o so_o well_o con_v this_o lesson_n of_o loyalty_n in_o our_o author_n own_o judgement_n but_o that_o some_o strong_a pretender_n may_v have_v teach_v they_o a_o new_a art_n of_o oblivion_n it_o be_v no_o improbable_a thing_n as_o himself_o confess_v to_o have_v hear_v of_o a_o king_n henry_n the_o nine_o if_o henry_n fitz-roy_a the_o duke_n of_o somerset_n and_o richmond_n have_v live_v so_o long_o as_o to_o the_o death_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o fol._n 11._o afterward_o philpot_n be_v trouble_v by_o gardiner_n for_o his_o word_n speak_v in_o the_o convocation_n in_o vain_a do_v he_o plead_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o place_n common_o repute_v a_o part_n of_o parliament_n i_o can_v find_v that_o the_o convocation_n at_o this_o time_n nor_o many_o year_n before_o this_o time_n be_v common_o repute_v as_o a_o part_n of_o the_o parliament_n that_o ancient_o it_o have_v be_v so_o i_o shall_v easy_o grant_v there_o be_v a_o clause_n in_o every_o letter_n of_o summons_n by_o which_o the_o bishop_n be_v require_v to_o attend_v in_o
fellow_n of_o this_o college_n who_o book_n entitle_v the_o religion_n of_o protestant_n a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n write_v in_o deâence_n of_o dr._n potter_n book_n call_v charity_n mistake_v commend_v by_o our_o author_n lib._n 3._o fol._n 115._o remains_o unanswered_a by_o the_o jesuit_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o brag_n beforehand_o to_o this_o very_a day_n which_o book_n though_o most_o ridiculous_o bury_v with_o the_o author_n at_o arundel_n get_v thou_o go_v thou_o accurse_v book_n etc._n etc._n by_o mr._n francis_n cheynel_n the_o usu_fw-la fructuary_n of_o the_o rich_a personage_n of_o peâworth_n shall_v still_o survive_v unto_o the_o world_n in_o its_o own_o just_a value_n when_o the_o poor_a threepenny_n commodity_n of_o such_o a_o sorry_a haberdasher_n of_o small_a ware_n shall_v be_v out_o of_o credit_n of_o this_o pageant_n see_v the_o pamphet_n call_v chillingworthi_a novissima_fw-la print_v at_o london_n anno_fw-la 1644._o fol._n 41._o but_o now_o it_o be_v go_v calais_n let_v it_o go_v it_o be_v but_o a_o beggarly_a town_n and_o cost_n england_n ten_o time_n yearly_o more_o than_o it_o be_v worthâ_n in_o keep_v thereof_o admit_v it_o be_v so_o yet_o certain_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o keep_n have_v it_o cost_v much_o more_o the_o english_a while_n they_o keep_v that_o town_n have_v a_o door_n open_a into_o france_n upon_o all_o occasion_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v common_o say_v that_o they_o carry_v the_o key_n of_o france_n at_o their_o girdle_n sound_v statesman_n do_v not_o measure_v the_o benefit_n of_o such_o town_n and_o garrison_n as_o be_v maintain_v and_o keep_v in_o a_o enemy_n country_n by_o the_o profit_n which_o they_o bring_v into_o their_o exchequer_n but_o by_o the_o opportunity_n they_o give_v a_o prince_n to_o enlarge_v his_o territory_n of_o this_o kind_n be_v the_o town_n of_o barwick_n situate_v on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o tweed_n upon_o scottish_a ground_n but_o garrison_v and_o maintain_v with_o great_a charge_n by_o the_o king_n of_o england_n because_o it_o give_v he_o the_o same_o advantage_n against_o the_o scot_n as_o calais_n do_v against_o the_o french_a the_o government_n of_o which_o last_o town_n be_v by_o comines_n say_v to_o be_v the_o goodly_a captain_n ship_n in_o the_o world_n so_o great_a a_o eyesore_a to_o the_o french_a that_o mounsieur_fw-fr de_fw-fr cordes_n who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o lewis_n the_o eleven_o be_v use_v to_o say_v that_o he_o will_v be_v content_a to_o lie_v in_o hell_n seven_o year_n together_o upon_o condition_n that_o calais_n be_v regain_v from_o the_o english_a and_o final_o judge_v of_o such_o importance_n by_o the_o french_a when_o they_o have_v regain_v it_o that_o neither_o the_o agreement_n make_v at_o the_o treaty_n of_o cambray_n nor_o the_o desire_n to_o free_a new-haven_n from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o english_a nor_o the_o necessity_n which_o henry_n the_o four_o be_v reduce_v unto_o can_v ever_o prevail_v upon_o they_o to_o part_v with_o it_o but_o it_o be_v dry_a meat_n say_v the_o country_n fellow_n when_o he_o lose_v the_o hare_n and_o so_o let_v caliâe_o pass_v for_o a_o beggarly_a town_n and_o not_o worth_a the_o keep_n because_o we_o have_v no_o hope_n to_o get_v it_o animadversion_n on_o the_o nine_o book_n of_o the_o church_n history_n of_o britain_n contain_v the_o reign_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o short_a reign_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o and_o queen_n mary_n be_v brief_o pass_v over_o by_o our_o author_n he_o spend_v the_o more_o time_n in_o set_v out_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n under_o queen_n elizabeth_n not_o so_o much_o because_o her_o reign_n be_v long_o but_o because_o it_o be_v a_o busy_a age_n and_o full_a of_o faction_n to_o which_o faction_n how_o he_o stand_v affect_v he_o be_v not_o coy_a to_o let_v we_o see_v on_o all_o occasion_n give_v we_o in_o the_o very_a first_o entrance_n this_o brief_a but_o notable_a essay_n viz._n fol._n 51._o idolatry_n be_v not_o to_o be_v permit_v a_o moment_n the_o first_o minute_n be_v the_o fit_a to_o abolish_v it_o all_o that_o have_v power_n have_v right_a to_o destroy_v it_o by_o that_o grand_a charter_n of_o religion_n whereby_o every_o one_o be_v âound_v to_o advance_v god_n glory_n and_o if_o sovereign_n forget_v no_o reason_n but_o subject_n shall_v remember_v their_o duty_n our_o author_n speak_v this_o in_o behalf_n of_o some_o forward_a spirit_n who_o not_o endure_v the_o laâinesse_n of_o authority_n in_o order_n to_o the_o great_a work_n of_o reformation_n fall_v beforehand_o to_o the_o beat_n down_o of_o superstitious_a picture_n and_o image_n and_o though_o some_o other_o condemn_v their_o indiscretion_n herein_o yet_o our_o author_n will_v not_o but_o rather_o give_v these_o reason_n for_o their_o justification_n 1._o that_o the_o popish_a religion_n be_v idolatry_n 2._o that_o idolatry_n be_v to_o be_v destroy_v by_o all_o that_o have_v power_n to_o do_v it_o 3._o which_o be_v indeed_o the_o main_a that_o if_o the_o sovereign_n do_v forget_v there_o be_v no_o reason_n but_o subject_n shall_v remember_v their_o duty_n this_o be_v our_o author_n masterpiece_n and_o a_o fair_a groundwork_n for_o seditious_a and_o rebellious_a for_o the_o time_n ensue_v i_o shall_v spend_v a_o little_a the_o more_o time_n in_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o proposition_n as_o before_o we_o have_v they_o and_o 1._o it_o will_v be_v hard_a for_o our_o author_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o romish_a religion_n be_v idolatry_n though_o possible_a it_o be_v that_o some_o of_o the_o member_n of_o that_o church_n may_v be_v prove_v idolater_n i_o know_v well_o what_o great_a pain_n dr._n reynolds_n take_v in_o his_o laborious_a work_n entitle_v de_fw-fr idololatria_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la romanae_fw-la and_o i_o know_v too_o that_o many_o very_a learned_a and_o moderate_a man_n be_v not_o thorough_o satisfy_v in_o his_o proof_n and_o argument_n that_o they_o be_v worshipper_n of_o image_n as_o themselves_o deny_v not_o so_o no_o body_n but_o themselves_o can_v approve_v they_o in_o it_o but_o there_o be_v a_o very_a wide_a difference_n betwixt_o a_o image_n and_o a_o idol_n betwixt_o the_o old_a idolater_n in_o the_o state_n of_o heathenism_n and_o those_o which_o give_v religious_a worship_n unto_o image_n in_o some_o paâts_n of_o chrisâendom_n and_o this_o our_o author_n be_v well_o study_v in_o antiquity_n and_o not_o a_o stranger_n to_o the_o ãâ¦ã_z of_o the_o present_a time_n can_v choose_v but_o know_v thoâgh_a zeal_n to_o the_o good_a cause_n and_o the_o desire_n of_o be_v constant_a to_o himself_o draw_v this_o pâââage_n from_o he_o the_o christian_a faith_n deliver_v in_o the_o hâly_a gospel_n succeed_v over_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o then_o know_a woââd_n in_o the_o place_n of_o that_o idolatrous_a worship_n whiâh_o like_o a_o leprosy_n have_v general_o overspread_v the_o whole_a face_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o that_o the_o whole_a mass_n of_o wickliff_n heâerodoxies_n may_v be_v christen_v by_o the_o name_n of_o gospel_n our_o author_n think_v it_o necessary_a that_o the_o popish_a mass_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o superstitious_a of_o that_o church_n shall_v be_v call_v idolatry_n 2._o that_o idolatry_n be_v to_o be_v destroy_v by_o all_o they_o that_o have_v power_n to_o do_v it_o i_o shall_v easy_o grant_v but_o than_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o lawful_a power_n and_o not_o permit_v to_o the_o liberty_n of_o unlawful_a violence_n id_fw-la possumus_fw-la quod_fw-la jure_fw-la possumus_fw-la be_v the_o rule_n of_o old_a and_o it_o hold_v good_a in_o all_o attempt_n for_o reformation_n in_o the_o elder_a time_n for_o when_o the_o fabric_n of_o the_o jewish_a church_n be_v out_o of_o order_n and_o the_o whole_a worship_n of_o the_o lord_n either_o defile_v with_o superstition_n or_o intermingle_v with_o idolatry_n as_o it_o be_v too_o often_o do_v not_o god_n servant_n carry_v and_o await_v his_o leisure_n till_o those_o who_o be_v supreme_a both_o in_o place_n and_o power_n be_v by_o he_o prompt_v and_o inflame_v to_o a_o reformation_n how_o many_o year_n have_v that_o whole_a people_n make_v a_o idol_n of_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o burn_v ââcense_n to_o it_o before_o it_o be_v deface_v by_o king_n hâzekiah_n how_o many_o more_o may_v it_o have_v long_o stand_v undefaced_a untouched_a by_o any_o of_o the_o common_a people_n have_v not_o the_o king_n give_v order_n to_o demolish_v it_o how_o many_o year_n have_v the_o seduce_a israelite_n adore_v before_o the_o altar_n of_o bethel_n before_o it_o be_v hew_v down_o and_o cut_v in_o pâeces_n by_o the_o good_a king_n josiah_n and_o yet_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v as_o much_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o jew_n to_o destroy_v that_o idol_n and_o of_o the_o honest_a and_o religious_a israelite_n to_o break_v down_o that_o
recite_v the_o course_n both_o of_o his_o preferment_n and_o employment_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o soon_o after_o the_o king_n come_v to_o the_o crownââ_n he_o be_v make_v dean_n of_o christ-church_n in_o oxon_n and_o choose_v one_o of_o the_o four_o preacher_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n but_o first_o dr._n king_n be_v not_o dean_n of_o christ-church_n at_o the_o time_n of_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n that_o conference_n be_v hold_v in_o january_n an._n 1603._o and_o dr._n king_n not_o come_v to_o the_o deanery_n of_o christ-church_n till_o the_o year_n 1605._o second_o he_o be_v none_o oâ_n the_o fouâ_n preacher_n in_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n there_o be_v no_o such_o preacher_n choose_v for_o the_o âime_n of_o that_o conference_n but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o true_a and_o old_a say_n that_o omnis_fw-la fabula_fw-la fundatur_fw-la in_o historia_fw-la so_o i_o may_v âây_v that_o there_o be_v something_o true_a and_o real_a which_o may_v âarry_v he_o inadvertent_o upon_o this_o error_n for_o in_o sepââmber_n anno_fw-la 1606._o it_o please_v king_n james_n to_o call_v before_o âim_v at_o hampton-court_n the_o melvin_n and_o some_o other_o of_o âhe_n principal_a stickler_n for_o presbytery_n of_o the_o scottish_a naâion_n for_o information_n of_o who_o judgement_n and_o reââucing_v they_o if_o possible_a to_o some_o conformity_n he_o cause_v four_o sermon_n to_o be_v there_o preach_v in_o their_o heaâing_n by_o âour_n of_o his_o most_o able_a divine_n that_o be_v to_o say_v dr._n andrews_n then_o bishop_n of_o chichester_n dr._n barlow_n before_o mention_v than_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n dr._n king_n than_o dean_n of_o christ-church_n after_o bishop_n of_o london_n and_o dr._n buckeridge_n who_o after_o succeed_v in_o the_o see_v of_o rochesterâ_n and_o die_v bishop_n of_o ely_n which_o four_o sermon_n be_v afterward_o print_v and_o bind_v together_o though_o they_o give_v very_o good_a satisfaction_n to_o most_o person_n else_o can_v get_v no_o ground_n upon_o those_o refractory_a scot_n who_o be_v resolve_v aforehand_o not_o to_o hear_v the_o voice_n of_o those_o charmer_n charm_v they_o never_o so_o sweet_o fol._n 27._o indeed_o a_o statute_n have_v former_o be_v make_v thâ_n 13._o of_o queen_n elizabeth_n which_o to_o prevent_v final_a ãâã_d of_o church_n land_n do_v disable_v all_o subject_n from_o ãâã_d they_o but_o in_o that_o statute_n a_o liberty_n be_v leave_v unto_o the_o crown_n to_o receive_v the_o same_o our_o author_n speak_v this_o on_o occasion_n of_o a_o statute_n make_v in_o the_o first_o parliament_n of_o king_n jamââ_n by_o which_o the_o king_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v make_v uncapable_a of_o receive_v any_o grant_n or_o lease_n of_o land_n from_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n for_o long_a than_o 21_o year_n or_o three_o life_n but_o he_o be_v much_o mistake_v in_o the_o ground_n of_o it_o for_o first_o the_o statute_n he_o relate_v unto_o be_v not_o make_v in_o the_o thirteen_o year_n of_o the_o queen_n that_o statute_n extend_v only_o unto_o dean_n and_o chapter_n master_n of_o college_n and_o hospital_n as_o also_o unto_o parson_n and_o vicar_n who_o by_o long_a lease_n have_v dilapidate_v the_o public_a patrimony_n of_o the_o church_n and_o their_o several_a house_n not_o a_o word_n in_o it_o which_o concern_v archbishop_n and_o bishop_n or_o any_o lease_n by_o they_o make_v and_o second_o that_o statute_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v do_v not_o disable_v all_o subject_n from_o accept_v such_o lease_n grant_n and_o alienation_n but_o disable_v the_o say_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n from_o make_v such_o grant_n unto_o the_o subject_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o statute_n which_o our_o author_n mean_v be_v a_o unprint_v statute_n make_v in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n by_o which_o it_o be_v enact_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o the_o say_a queen_n as_o often_o as_o any_o archbishopric_n or_o bishopric_n shall_v be_v vacant_a to_o take_v unto_o herself_o any_o of_o the_o castle_n manor_n lanâs_n tenement_n and_o here_o ditament_n to_o the_o same_o belong_v and_o to_o pay_v the_o say_a archbishop_n or_o bishop_n in_o impropriation_n tithe_n and_o portion_n of_o tithe_n and_o this_o be_v that_o statute_n which_o our_o author_n relate_v unto_o lib._n 9_o fol._n 70._o where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o a_o bill_n pass_v for_o the_o assurance_n of_o certain_a land_n assume_v by_o the_o queen_n from_o some_o bishoprickâ_n during_o their_o vacation_n and_o second_o it_o be_v enact_v in_o the_o say_v unprint_v statute_n that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n to_o grant_v any_o land_n lease_n or_o estate_n for_o more_o than_o 21_o year_n or_o three_o life_n to_o any_o person_n whatsoever_o except_o it_o be_v unto_o the_o queen_n ãâã_d heir_n and_o successor_n which_o last_o word_n open_v such_o a_o gap_n to_o sacrilege_n and_o rapine_n that_o what_o the_o queen_n think_v fit_a to_o leave_v unto_o the_o church_n vacant_a seed_n the_o â_z woo_a find_v some_o way_n to_o divest_v it_o of_o by_o make_v use_n of_o this_o last_o clause_n first_o in_o obtain_v such_o a_o ãâã_d to_o be_v make_v to_o the_o queen_n and_o then_o from_o the_o queen_n unto_o themselves_o so_o that_o our_o author_n may_v have_v save_v his_o advocate_a for_o this_o clause_n of_o that_o act_n consider_v that_o he_o see_v the_o ill_a consequent_n and_o effect_n thereof_o fol._n 54._o some_o of_o the_o great_a prelate_n how_o much_o self_n be_v there_o ãâã_d all_o man_n tho_o seem_o forward_a real_o remiââ_n in_o the_o matter_n this_o speak_v in_o relation_n to_o cheâsey_n college_n the_o stop_n whereof_o must_v be_v impute_v to_o some_o great_a prelate_n fear_v to_o grow_v less_o both_o in_o esteem_n power_n and_o jurisdiction_n if_o that_o work_n go_v forward_o contrary_a whereunto_o he_o kell_v we_o of_o folâ57_n â57_z that_o he_o be_v very_o forward_o in_o sound_v chelsey_n coââedge_n which_o as_o a_o two_o edge_a sword_n be_v to_o cut_v on_o both_o side_n to_o suppress_v papist_n and_o sectary_n upon_o which_o ground_n there_o be_v no_o question_n to_o be_v make_v but_o that_o the_o work_n be_v further_v also_o by_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n at_o the_o least_o not_o hinder_v our_o author_n have_v indeed_o afford_v we_o this_o marginal_a note_n viz._n this_o obstruction_n signify_v nothing_o of_o discreet_a man_n how_o ever_o it_o must_v pass_v for_o company_n sake_n but_o it_o have_v argue_v more_o discretion_n in_o he_o as_o i_o conceive_v to_o have_v leave_v this_o obstruction_n as_o he_o call_v it_o out_o of_o his_o discourse_n than_o first_o to_o break_v the_o bishop_n head_n and_o then_o give_v they_o this_o plaster_n howsoever_o he_o viz._n mr._n nicholas_n âuller_n leave_v behind_o he_o the_o reputation_n of_o a_o honest_a man_n no_o question_n of_o it_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o incident_a to_o the_o name_n that_o whatsoever_o they_o do_v or_o say_v they_o be_v honest_a still_o before_o we_o have_v the_o story_n of_o thomas_n fullâr_n of_o hammersmith_n condemn_v for_o felony_n but_o still_o so_o honest_a and_o to_o entire_o belove_v by_o king_n harry_n the_o six_o after_o his_o decease_n that_o he_o appear_v to_o he_o on_o the_o top_n of_o the_o gallow_n encourage_v he_o and_o so_o claâmed_v the_o rope_n that_o it_o do_v not_o strangle_v he_o lib._n 4._o 154._o afterward_o we_o meet_v with_o john_n fuller_n doctor_n of_o the_o law_n a_o better_a than_o he_o a_o persecutor_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n but_o a_o pitiful_a man_n as_o the_o index_n tell_v we_o here_o we_o have_v nicholas_n fuller_n a_o counsellor_n the_o best_a of_o the_o three_o decry_v open_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o high_a commission_n and_o thereby_o give_v a_o legal_a advantage_n to_o archbishop_n bancroft_n by_o who_o imprison_v and_o there_o die_v but_o die_v with_o the_o reputation_n of_o a_o honest_a man_n and_o then_o another_o thomas_n fuller_n a_o minister_n the_o best_a of_o all_o the_o company_n and_o a_o honest_a man_n too_o so_o well_o deserve_v of_o the_o church_n and_o all_o good_a churchman_n both_o alive_a and_o dead_a by_o this_o notable_a history_n as_o not_o to_o doubt_v of_o the_o like_a favour_n at_o their_o hand_n shall_v there_o be_v occasion_n as_o thomas_n of_o hammersmith_n receive_v of_o king_n harry_n the_o six_o fol._n 57_o i_o be_o credible_o inform_v from_o a_o good_a hand_n how_o in_o the_o day_n of_o king_n james_n a_o scotch_a man_n and_o a_o prevalent_a courtier_n have_v swallow_v up_o the_o whole_a bishopric_n of_o durhâm_n have_v not_o this_o archbishop_n seasonable_o interpose_v his_o power_n with_o the_o king_n and_o dash_v the_o design_n credible_a though_o the_o information_n be_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o true_a there_o be_v no_o such_o prevalent_a courtier_n not_o no_o such_o
bishop_n of_o chichester_n as_o final_o the_o two_o first_o chapter_n about_o the_o tthe_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v learned_o review_v by_o mr._n nettles_n a_o country_n ãâã_d but_o excellent_o well_o skill_v in_o talmudical_a learning_n in_o which_o encounter_v the_o historian_n be_v so_o gall_v by_o tilles_o so_o gag_v by_o montague_n and_o sting_v by_o nettle_n that_o he_o never_o come_v off_o in_o any_o of_o his_o undertake_n with_o such_o loss_n of_o credit_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o his_o history_n he_o have_v charge_v the_o clergy_n with_o ignorance_n and_o laziness_n upbraid_v they_o with_o have_v nothing_o to_o keep_v up_o their_o credit_n but_o beard_n habit_n and_o title_n and_o that_o their_o study_n reach_v no_o further_o than_o the_o breviary_n the_o postil_v and_o the_o polyanthea_n but_o now_o he_o find_v by_o these_o encounter_n that_o some_o of_o the_o ignorant_a and_o lazy_a clergy_n be_v of_o as_o retire_a study_n as_o himself_o and_o can_v not_o only_o match_v but_o overmatch_v he_o too_o in_o his_o own_o philologic_n but_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n go_v a_o short_a way_n and_o not_o expect_v till_o the_o book_n be_v answer_v by_o particular_a man_n resolve_v to_o seek_v for_o reparation_n of_o the_o wrong_n from_o the_o author_n himself_o upon_o a_o information_n to_o be_v bring_v against_o he_o in_o the_o high_a commission_n fear_v the_o issue_n of_o the_o business_n and_o understand_v what_o displeasure_n be_v conceive_v against_o he_o by_o the_o king_n and_o the_o church_n he_o make_v his_o personal_a appearance_n in_o the_o open_a court_n at_o lambeth_n on_o the_o eight_o and_o twenty_o day_n of_o january_n annâ_n 1618._o where_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o george_n l._n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n john_n l._n b._n of_o london_n lancelot_n l._n b._n of_o winchester_n john_n l._n b._n of_o rochester_n sir_n john_n benet_n sir_n william_n bird_n sir_n george_n newman_n doctor_n of_o the_o law_n and_o thâmas_n mothershed_n notary_n and_o register_n of_o that_o couât_n he_o tender_v his_o submission_n and_o acknowledgement_n all_o of_o his_o own_o hand-writing_n in_o these_o follow_a word_n my_o goâ_n lord_n i_o most_o humble_o acknowledge_v my_o error_n whicâ_n haâe_v commit_v in_o publish_v the_o history_n of_o tithe_n and_o especial_o in_o that_o i_o have_v at_o all_o by_o show_v any_o interpretation_n of_o holy_a scripture_n by_o meddle_v with_o counsel_n father_n or_o canon_n or_o by_o whatsoever_o occur_v in_o it_o offer_v any_o occasion_n of_o argument_n against_o any_o right_n of_o maintenance_n âure_n divino_fw-la of_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n beseech_v your_o lordship_n to_o receive_v this_o ingenuous_a and_o humble_a acknowledgement_n together_o with_o the_o unfeigned_a protestation_n of_o my_o grief_n for_o that_o through_o it_o i_o have_v so_o incur_v both_o his_o majesty_n and_o your_o lordship_n displeasure_n conceive_v against_o i_o in_o behalf_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n john_n selden_n which_o his_o submission_n and_o acknowledgement_n be_v receive_v and_o make_v into_o a_o act_n of_o court_n be_v enter_v into_o the_o public_a register_n thereof_o by_o this_o title_n follow_v viz._n officium_fw-la dominorum_fw-la contra_fw-la joh._n seldeââ_n de_fw-fr inter_fw-la templo_fw-la london_n armigerum_fw-la so_o far_o our_o author_n shall_v have_v go_v have_v he_o play_v the_o part_n of_o a_o good_a historian_n but_o that_o he_o do_v his_o work_n by_o half_n in_o all_o church-concernments_a fol._n 72._o james_z montague_z bishop_n of_o winchester_z a_o potent_a courtier_n take_v exception_n that_o his_o bishopric_n in_o the_o marshal_n of_o they_o be_v wrong_v in_o method_n as_o put_v after_o any_o who_o bishop_n be_v a_o privy_a counsellor_n the_o bishop_n be_v too_o wise_a a_o man_n to_o take_v this_o as_o our_o author_n hate_v it_o for_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o the_o proceed_n against_o dr._n mocket_n who_o have_v then_o new_o translate_v into_o the_o latin_a tongue_n the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n the_o 39_o article_n the_o book_n of_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o many_o doctrinal_a point_n extract_v out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o homily_n all_o which_o with_o bishop_n jewel_n apology_n mr._n noels_n catechism_n and_o a_o new_a book_n of_o his_o own_o entitle_v politiâ_n ecclesiae_fw-la anglicanae_n he_o have_v cause_v to_o be_v print_v and_o bind_v up_o together_o a_o book_n which_o may_v have_v be_v of_o great_a honour_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n among_o foreign_a nation_n and_o of_o no_o less_o use_n and_o esteem_v at_o home_n have_v there_o not_o be_v somewhat_o else_o in_o it_o which_o deserve_v the_o fire_n then_o this_o imaginary_a quarrel_n for_o by_o the_o act_n of_o parliament_n 31_o h._n 8._o 6._o 10._o the_o precedency_n of_o the_o bishop_n be_v thus_o marshal_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n the_o archbishop_n of_o york_n the_o bishop_n of_o london_n the_o bishop_n of_o durham_n the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n the_o rest_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o their_o consecration_n yet_o so_o that_o if_o any_o of_o they_o be_v secretary_n to_o the_o king_n he_o shall_v take_v place_n of_o all_o those_o other_o bishop_n to_o who_o otherwise_o by_o the_o order_n of_o his_o consecration_n he_o have_v be_v to_o give_v it_o if_o the_o doctor_n do_v mistake_v himself_o in_o this_o particular_a as_o indeed_o he_o do_v the_o fault_n may_v easy_o have_v be_v mend_v as_o not_o deserve_v to_o be_v expiate_v by_o so_o sharp_a a_o punishment_n the_o follow_a reason_n touch_v his_o derogate_a from_o the_o king_n power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n and_o add_v it_o to_o the_o metropolitan_a who_o servant_n and_o chaplain_n he_o be_v have_v more_o reason_n in_o it_o if_o it_o have_v but_o as_o much_o truth_n as_o reason_n and_o so_o have_v that_o touch_v the_o proposition_n by_o he_o gather_v out_o of_o the_o homily_n which_o be_v rather_o frame_v according_a to_o his_o own_o judgement_n then_o square_v by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o which_o i_o conceive_v to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a cause_n why_o the_o book_n be_v burn_v be_v that_o in_o publish_v the_o twenty_o article_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n he_o total_o leave_v out_o the_o first_o clause_n of_o it_o viz._n habet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la ritus_fw-la sive_fw-la ceremonias_fw-la statuendi_fw-la jus_o &_o in_o controversus_fw-la âides_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o article_n be_v apparent_o falsify_v the_o church_n authority_n disavow_v and_o consequent_o a_o wide_a gap_n open_v to_o dispute_v her_o power_n in_o all_o her_o canon_n and_o determination_n of_o what_o sort_n soever_o and_o possible_a enough_o it_o be_v that_o some_o just_a offence_n may_v be_v take_v at_o he_o for_o make_v the_o fast_a day_n appoint_v in_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o be_v command_v and_o observe_v ob_n politiâ_n be_v solum_fw-la rationes_fw-la for_o politic_a consideration_n only_o as_o insinuate_v pag._n 308._o whereas_o those_o fasting-day_n be_v appoint_v in_o the_o first_o liturgy_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o anno_fw-la 1549._o with_o reference_n only_o to_o the_o primitive_a institution_n of_o those_o several_a fast_n when_o no_o such_o politic_a consideration_n be_v so_o much_o as_o think_v of_o but_o whatsoever_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n or_o whether_o there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o as_o perhaps_o there_o be_v certain_a i_o be_o it_o can_v not_o be_v for_o derogate_a any_o thing_n from_o the_o king_n power_n and_o enlarge_a that_o of_o the_o archbishop_n in_o confirm_v the_o election_n of_o bishop_n as_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o for_o though_o the_o doctor_n do_v affirm_v of_o the_o metropolitan_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n pag._n 308._o ut_fw-la electiones_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la suae_fw-la provinciae_fw-la confirment_fw-la that_o it_o belong_v to_o they_o to_o confirm_v the_o electioâs_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o several_a province_n and_o for_o that_o purpose_n cite_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a which_o our_o author_n speak_v of_o yet_o afterward_o he_o declare_v express_o that_o no_o such_o confirmation_n be_v or_o can_v be_v make_v by_o the_o metropolitan_o without_o the_o king_n assent_n precede_v cujus_fw-la ãâã_d electi_fw-la comprobantur_fw-la comprobati_fw-la confirmantur_fw-la confirmati_fw-la consecrantur_fw-la pag._n 313._o which_o very_o full_o clear_v the_o doctor_n from_o be_v a_o better_a chaplain_n than_o he_o be_v a_o subject_a as_o our_o author_n make_v he_o fol._n 77._o at_o this_o time_n begin_v the_o trouble_n in_o the_o law-country_n about_o matter_n of_o religion_n heighten_v between_o two_o opposite_a party_n remonstrant_n and_o contra-remonstrants_a their_o controversy_n be_v chief_o ãâã_d to_o five_o point_n &c_n &c_n not_o at_o this_o time_n viz._n 1618._o which_o our_o
secret_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n interest_n tenebris_fw-la interest_n cogitationibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la quasi_fw-la alteris_fw-la tenebris_fw-la as_o minutius_n have_v it_o the_o man_n here_o mention_v have_v be_v in_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o author_n himself_o archbishop_n of_o spalleto_n in_o dalmatia_n â_o dignity_n of_o great_a power_n and_o reputation_n and_o consequent_o of_o a_o fair_a revenue_n in_o proportion_n to_o it_o he_o can_v not_o hope_v to_o mend_v his_o fortune_n by_o his_o come_n hither_o or_o to_o advance_v himself_o to_o a_o more_o liberal_a entertainment_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o what_o he_o have_v attain_v unto_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n covetousness_n therefore_o can_v not_o be_v the_o motive_n for_o leave_v his_o own_o estate_n of_o which_o he_o have_v be_v possess_v 14_o year_n in_o our_o author_n âeckoning_n to_o betake_v himself_o to_o a_o strange_a country_n where_o he_o ãâã_d promise_v himself_o nothing_o but_o protection_n and_o the_o ââeedom_n of_o conscience_n our_o author_n may_v have_v say_v with_o more_o probability_n that_o covetousness_n and_o not_o conscience_n ãâ¦ã_z cause_n of_o his_o go_v hence_o no_o bâit_n of_o proâât_fw-la or_o preferment_n be_v lay_v before_o he_o to_o invite_v he_o ãâã_d âs_v they_o be_v both_o by_o those_o which_o have_v the_o manage_n ãâ¦ã_z he_o hence_o he_o have_v give_v great_a ãâã_d to_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o defection_n from_o that_o church_n and_o no_o ãâã_d councenance_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ãâã_d church_n by_o his_o come_n oâer_o unto_o ouâs_n the_o ãâã_d of_o âo_o great_a a_o ãâ¦ã_z of_o that_o church_n be_v not_o like_a to_o stand_v and_o yet_o he_o give_v great_a blow_n to_o they_o by_o his_o pen_n then_o by_o the_o defection_n of_o his_o person_n his_o learned_a book_n entitle_v de_n republica_n ecclesiasticâ_fw-la be_v still_o unanswered_a in_o which_o respect_n those_o of_o that_o church_n bestir_v themselves_o to_o disgrace_v his_o person_n devise_v many_o other_o cause_n by_o which_o he_o may_v be_v move_v or_o force_v to_o forsake_v those_o part_n in_o which_o he_o dare_v no_o long_o tarry_v but_o find_v little_a credit_n give_v to_o their_o libellous_a pamphlet_n they_o begin_v to_o work_v upon_o he_o by_o more_o secret_a practice_n insinuate_v that_o he_o have_v neither_o that_o respect_n nor_o those_o advancement_n which_o may_v encourage_v he_o to_o stay_v that_o the_o new_a pope_n gregory_n the_o fifteen_o be_v his_o special_a friend_n that_o he_o may_v choose_v his_o own_o preferment_n and_o make_v his_o own_o condition_n if_o he_o will_v return_v and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o cunning_o wrought_v he_o out_o of_o credit_n with_o king_n james_n by_o the_o art_n of_o gondomar_n and_o lessen_v his_o esteem_n among_o the_o clergy_n by_o some_o other_o artifices_fw-la so_o that_o the_o poor_a man_n be_v in_o a_o manner_n lose_v on_o both_o side_n be_v force_v to_o a_o necessity_n of_o swallow_v that_o accurse_a bait_n by_o which_o he_o be_v hook_a over_o to_o his_o own_o destruction_n for_o which_o and_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o story_n the_o reader_n may_v repair_v for_o satisfaction_n to_o this_o present_a history_n fol._n 96._o beside_o the_o king_n will_v never_o bestow_v a_o episcopal_a charge_n in_o england_n on_o a_o foreiner_n no_o not_o on_o his_o own_o countryman_n the_o scot_n this_o must_v be_v understand_v with_o reference_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n king_n james_n bestow_v many_o bishopric_n upon_o his_o countryman_n the_o scot_n in_o the_o realm_n of_o ireland_n and_o if_o he_o do_v not_o the_o like_a here_o as_o indeed_o he_o do_v not_o it_o neither_o be_v for_o want_v of_o affection_n to_o they_o nor_o of_o confidence_n in_o they_o but_o because_o he_o will_v not_o put_v any_o such_o discouragement_n upon_o the_o english_a who_o look_v on_o those_o preferment_n as_o the_o great_a and_o most_o honourable_a reward_n of_o art_n and_o industry_n quis_fw-la enim_fw-la virtutem_fw-la exquireret_fw-la ipsum_fw-la proemia_fw-la si_fw-la âollin_a fol._n 100_o all_o man_n mouth_n be_v now_o ãâã_d with_o discourse_n of_o prince_n charles_n his_o match_n with_o ãâ¦ã_z infanta_n of_o spain_n the_o protestant_n grieve_v thereat_o fear_v that_o this_o marriage_n will_v be_v the_o funeral_n of_o their_o religion_n etc._n etc._n the_o buââness_n of_o the_o match_n with_o spainâath_n âath_z already_o be_v sufficient_o agitate_a between_o the_o author_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n charles_n and_o his_o observator_fw-la and_o yet_o i_o must_v add_v something_o to_o let_v our_o author_n and_o his_o reader_n to_o understand_v thus_o much_o that_o the_o protestant_n have_v no_o cause_n to_o fear_v such_o a_o funeral_n they_o know_v they_o live_v under_o such_o a_o king_n who_o love_v his_o sovereignty_n too_o well_o to_o quit_v any_o part_n thereof_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n especial_o to_o part_v with_o that_o supremacy_n in_o ãâã_d matter_n which_o he_o esteem_v the_o fair_a flower_n in_o the_o royal_a garland_n they_o know_v they_o live_v under_o ââch_a a_o king_n who_o interest_n it_o be_v to_o preserve_v religion_n in_o the_o same_o state_n in_o which_o he_o find_v it_o and_o can_v not_o fear_v but_o that_o he_o will_v sufficient_o provide_v for_o the_o ãâã_d of_o it_o if_o any_o protestant_n âeared_v the_o funeral_n of_o their_o religion_n they_o be_v such_o protestant_n as_o have_v be_v fright_v out_o ãâ¦ã_z as_o you_o know_v who_o use_v to_o call_v the_o puritan_n ãâ¦ã_z under_o the_o name_n of_o protestant_n have_v contrive_v themselves_o into_o a_o faction_n not_o only_o against_o episcopacy_n but_o even_o monarchy_n also_o and_o to_o these_o nothing_o be_v more_o ãâã_d than_o the_o match_n with_o spain_n fear_v ând_v perhaps_o ãâã_d fear_v that_o the_o king_n ãâã_d with_o that_o crown_n may_v aâm_v he_o both_o with_o power_n and_o counsel_n to_o suppress_v those_o practice_n which_o have_v since_o prove_v the_o funeral_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o as_o it_o seem_v they_o ãâ¦ã_z fear_v be_v our_o author_n tell_v we_o fol._n 112._o that_o the_o ãâ¦ã_z state_n have_v no_o mind_n or_o meaning_n of_o a_o match_n and_o that_o this_o be_v quick_o discover_v by_o prince_n charles_n at_o his_o come_a ãâã_d how_o so_o because_o say_v he_o fol._n 112._o they_o demand_v ãâ¦ã_z in_o education_n of_o the_o ãâ¦ã_z english_a papist_n &c_n &c_n ãâ¦ã_z nothing_o for_o thus_o the_o argument_n seem_v to_o stand_v viz._n the_o spaniard_n be_v desirous_a to_o get_v as_o good_a condition_n as_o they_o can_v for_o themselves_o and_o their_o party_n ergo_fw-la they_o have_v no_o mind_n to_o the_o match_n or_o thus_o the_o demand_n of_o the_o spaniard_n when_o the_o business_n be_v first_o in_o treaty_n seem_v to_o be_v unreasonable_a ergo_fw-la they_o never_o real_o intend_v that_o it_o shall_v proceed_v our_o author_n can_v be_v so_o great_a a_o stranger_n in_o the_o shop_n of_o london_n as_o not_o to_o know_v that_o tradesman_n use_v to_o ask_v many_o time_n twice_o as_o much_o for_o a_o commodity_n as_o they_o mean_v to_o take_v and_o therefore_o may_v conclude_v as_o strong_o that_o they_o do_v not_o mean_v to_o sell_v those_o ware_n for_o which_o they_o ask_v such_o a_o unreasonable_a ãâã_d at_o the_o first_o demand_n iniquum_fw-la petere_fw-la ut_fw-la aequum_fw-la obtineas_fw-la have_v be_v the_o usual_a practice_n especial_o in_o drive_v sâaâe-bargains_n of_o all_o time_n and_o age_n and_o though_o the_o spaniard_n at_o the_o first_o speak_v big_a and_o stand_v upon_o such_o point_n as_o the_o king_n neither_o can_v nor_o will_v in_o honour_n or_o conscience_n consent_n unto_o yet_o thing_n be_v after_o bring_v to_o such_o a_o temperament_n that_o the_o marriage_n be_v agree_v upon_o the_o article_n by_o both_o king_n subscribe_v a_o proxy_n make_v by_o the_o prince_n of_o âales_n to_o espouse_v the_o infanta_n and_o all_o thing_n on_o her_o part_n prepare_v for_o the_o day_n of_o the_o wedding_n the_o bâeach_n which_o âollowed_v come_v not_o from_o any_o averseness_n in_o the_o court_n of_o spain_n though_o where_o the_o fault_n be_v and_o by_o what_o mean_v occasion_v need_v not_o here_o be_v say_v but_o well_o âare_v our_o author_n for_o all_o that_o who_o final_o have_v absolve_v the_o spaniard_n from_o this_o breaâh_n and_o lay_v the_o same_o upon_o king_n james_n despair_v of_o any_o restitution_n to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o palatinate_n by_o the_o way_n of_o treaty_n ibiâ_n whereupon_o king_n james_n not_o only_o break_v off_o all_o treaty_n ãâã_d pain_n but_o also_o call_v the_o great_a council_n of_o his_o kingdom_n together_o by_o which_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o break_n off_o of_o the_o treaty_n do_v precede_v the_o parliament_n but_o multa_fw-la apparent_a quae_fw-la non_fw-la sunt_fw-la every_o thing_n be_v not_o as_o it_o seem_v the_o parliament_n
england_n france_n and_o ireland_n and_o proclaim_v that_o day_n to_o be_v crown_v consecrate_a and_o anoint_a unto_o who_o he_o demand_v whether_o they_o will_v obey_v and_o serve_v or_o not_o by_o who_o it_o be_v again_o with_o a_o loud_o cry_v answer_v god_n save_o the_o king_n and_o ever_o live_v his_o majesty_n the_o same_o we_o have_v in_o substance_n but_o in_o sewer_a word_n in_o the_o coronation_n of_o king_n james_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o king_n be_v show_v to_o the_o people_n and_o that_o they_o be_v require_v to_o make_v acknowledgement_n of_o theââ_n allegiance_n to_o his_o majesty_n by_o the_o archbishop_n which_o they_o do_v by_o acclamation_n assure_o the_o difference_n be_v exceed_v vaât_o betwixt_o obey_v and_o consent_v betwixt_o the_o people_n acknowledge_v their_o allegiance_n and_o promise_v to_o obey_v and_o serve_v theiâ_n lawful_a sovereign_n and_o give_v their_o consent_n to_o his_o coronation_n as_o if_o it_o can_v not_o be_v perform_v without_o such_o consent_n nor_o have_v the_o late_a archbishop_n be_v reproach_v so_o general_o by_o the_o common_a people_n and_o that_o reproach_n publish_v in_o several_a pamphlet_n for_o alter_v the_o king_n oath_n at_o his_o coronation_n to_o the_o infringe_n of_o the_o libeââies_n and_o diminution_n of_o the_o right_n of_o the_o english_a subject_n have_v he_o do_v they_o such_o a_o notable_a pieâe_n of_o service_n as_o free_v they_o from_o all_o promise_n to_o obey_v and_o âerve_v and_o make_v the_o king_n coronation_n to_o depend_v on_o their_o consent_n for_o bishop_n laud_n be_v one_o of_o that_o committee_n which_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o king_n to_o review_v the_o form_n and_o oâder_v of_o the_o coronation_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v fit_v to_o some_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o have_v not_o be_v observe_v before_o must_v bear_v the_o great_a blame_n in_o this_o alteration_n if_o any_o such_o alteration_n have_v be_v make_v as_o our_o author_n speak_v of_o because_o he_o be_v the_o principal_a man_n who_o the_o king_n reââed_v on_o in_o that_o business_n but_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o preface_n that_o this_o last_o book_n with_o divers_a of_o the_o rest_n be_v write_v by_o he_o when_o the_o monarchy_n be_v turn_v into_o a_o state_n and_o i_o dare_v believe_v he_o he_o have_v not_o elâe_v so_o punctual_o conform_v his_o language_n to_o the_o new_a state-doctrine_n by_o which_o the_o mâking_n and_o consequent_o the_o unmaking_a of_o king_n be_v whole_o veâted_v in_o âhe_n people_n according_a to_o that_o maxim_n of_o buchannan_n âopulo_fw-la jus_o est_fw-la imperium_fw-la cui_fw-la velit_fw-la deferat_fw-la then_o which_o âhere_o be_v not_o a_o more_o pestilent_a and_o seditious_a passage_n ân_v his_o whole_a book_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la regni_fw-la apud_fw-la scotos_fw-gr tho_o âhere_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o treason_n and_o sedition_n ân_v it_o fol._n 123._o then_o as_o many_o earl_n and_o baron_n as_o can_v convenient_o stand_v about_o the_o throne_n do_v lay_v their_o hand_n ân_o the_o crown_n on_o his_o majesty_n head_n protest_v to_o spend_v their_o blood_n to_o maintain_v it_o to_o he_o and_o his_o lawful_a heârs_n a_o promise_n faithful_o perform_v by_o many_o of_o they_o some_o lose_v their_o life_n for_o he_o in_o the_o open_a field_n other_o exhaust_v their_o estate_n in_o defence_n of_o he_o many_o more_o venture_v their_o whole_a fortune_n by_o adhere_v to_o he_o to_o a_o confiscation_n a_o catalogue_n of_o which_o laât_n we_o may_v find_v subscribe_v to_o a_o letter_n send_v from_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o of_o parliament_n assemble_v in_o oxford_n to_o those_o at_o westminster_n anno_fw-la 1643._o and_o by_o that_o catalogue_n we_o may_v also_o see_v what_o and_o who_o they_o be_v who_o so_o ignoble_o break_v faith_n with_o he_o all_o those_o who_o name_n we_o find_v not_o in_o that_o subscription_n or_o present_o superad_v to_o it_o be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o those_o who_o in_o stead_n of_o spend_v their_o blood_n to_o maintain_v the_o crown_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o lawful_a successor_n concur_v with_o they_o either_o in_o opere_fw-la or_o in_o ãâã_d who_o despoil_v he_o of_o it_o and_o to_o say_v truth_n they_o be_v reward_v as_o they_o have_v deserve_v the_o first_o thing_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o after_o the_o king_n by_o their_o mean_n have_v be_v bring_v to_o the_o fatal_a block_n be_v to_o turn_v they_o out_o of_o power_n to_o dissolve_v their_o house_n and_o annul_v their_o privilege_n reduce_v they_o to_o the_o same_o condition_n with_o the_o reât_n of_o the_o subject_n fol._n 127._o and_o it_o have_v not_o be_v amiss_o if_o such_o who_o will_v be_v account_v his_o friend_n and_o admirer_n have_v follow_v he_o in_o the_o footstep_n of_o his_o moderation_n content_a with_o the_o enjoy_n without_o the_o enjoin_v their_o private_a practice_n and_o opinion_n ãâã_d other_o this_o come_v in_o as_o a_o inference_n only_o on_o a_o formeâ_n passage_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v of_o bishop_n andrews_n that_o in_o whââ_n place_n soever_o he_o come_v he_o never_o press_v any_o other_o ceremony_n upon_o they_o than_o such_o as_o he_o find_v to_o be_v use_v there_o before_o ãâã_d come_v though_o otherwise_o condemn_v by_o some_o romany_a superstitious_a ceremony_n and_o superfluous_a ornament_n in_o his_o private_a chapel_n how_o true_a this_o be_v i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o affirm_v less_o able_a if_o it_o shall_v be_v true_a to_o commend_v it_o in_o he_o it_o be_v not_o certain_o the_o office_n of_o a_o careful_a bishop_n only_o to_o leave_v thing_n as_o he_o find_v they_o but_o to_o reduce_v they_o if_o amiss_o to_o those_o rule_n and_o canon_n from_o which_o by_o the_o forwardness_n of_o some_o to_o innovate_v and_o the_o connivance_n of_o other_o at_o the_o innovation_n they_o have_v be_v suffer_v to_o decline_v and_o for_o the_o inference_n itself_o it_o be_v intend_v chief_o for_o the_o late_a archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n against_o who_o he_o have_v a_o fling_n before_o in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o this_o history_n not_o note_v there_o because_o reserve_v to_o another_o place_n of_o which_o more_o hereafter_o condemn_v here_o for_o his_o want_n of_o moderation_n in_o enjoin_v his_o private_a practice_n and_o opinion_n on_o other_o man_n but_o ãâã_d our_o author_n have_v do_v well_o to_o have_v spare_v the_o man_n who_o have_v already_o reckon_v for_o all_o his_o error_n both_o with_o god_n and_o the_o world_n and_o second_o it_o have_v be_v betteâ_n if_o he_o have_v tell_v we_o what_o those_o private_a practice_n and_o opinion_n be_v which_o the_o archbishop_n with_o such_o want_n of_o moderation_n do_v enjoin_v on_o other_o for_o it_o be_v possible_a enough_o that_o the_o opinion_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o may_v be_v the_o public_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n maintain_v by_o he_o in_o opposition_n to_o those_o private_a opinion_n which_o the_o calvinian_a pârty_n have_v intend_v to_o obtrude_v upon_o she_o a_o thing_n complain_v of_o by_o spalleto_n who_o well_o observe_v that_o many_o of_o the_o opinion_n both_o of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n be_v receive_v among_o we_o as_o part_v of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o confession_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o otherwise_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v capable_a of_o a_o oxthoâx_n sense_n praeter_fw-la anglicanam_fw-la confessionem_fw-la âuam_fw-la mihi_fw-la ut_fw-la modestam_fw-la praedicabant_fw-la multa_fw-la ãâã_d lutheri_fw-la &_o calvini_n dogmata_fw-la obtinuisse_fw-la redâundi_fw-la âhe_v there_o object_n and_o it_o be_v possible_a enough_o ââat_o the_o practice_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v not_o private_a either_o but_o a_o reviver_n of_o those_o ancient_a and_o public_a âages_n which_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n enjoin_v ând_v by_o the_o remissness_n of_o the_o late_a government_n have_v be_v discontinue_v he_o that_o read_v the_o gag_n and_o the_o appello_n âaesarem_fw-la of_o bishop_n montague_n can_v but_o see_v that_o those_o opinion_n which_o our_o author_n condemn_v for_o private_a be_v âhe_n true_a doctrine_n of_o this_o church_n profess_v and_o hold_v forth_o ân_a the_o book_n of_o article_n the_o homily_n and_o the_o common-prayer-book_n but_o for_o a_o justification_n of_o the_o practice_n the_o private_a practice_n he_o speak_v of_o i_o shall_v direct_v âim_a to_o a_o author_n of_o more_o credit_n with_o he_o which_o ââthor_n first_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o bishop_n general_o that_o be_v of_o late_a year_n either_o careless_a or_o indulgent_a 143._o they_o have_v not_o require_v within_o their_o diocese_n that_o strict_a obedience_n to_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n which_o the_o law_n expect_v upon_o which_o the_o liturgy_n begin_v total_o to_o be_v lay_v aside_o and_o in_o conformity_n the_o uniform_a practice_n of_o âhe_n church_n he_o
england_n be_v much_o behold_v to_o our_o author_n for_o make_v question_n whether_o their_o adhere_n to_o the_o liturgy_n then_o by_o law_n establish_v be_v not_o to_o be_v impute_v rather_o unto_o obstinacy_n and_o dote_a then_o to_o love_n and_o constancy_n the_o liturgy_n have_v be_v look_v on_o as_o a_o great_a blessing_n of_o god_n upon_o this_o nation_n by_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o people_n for_o the_o spâce_n of_o fourscore_o year_n and_o upward_o they_o find_v it_o establish_v by_o the_o law_n seal_v by_o the_o blood_n of_o those_o that_o make_v it_o confirm_v by_o many_o godly_a and_o religious_a prince_n and_o have_v almost_o no_o other_o form_n of_o make_v their_o ordinary_a address_n to_o almighty_a god_n but_o what_o be_v teach_v they_o in_o the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n and_o can_v any_o discreet_a man_n think_v or_o wise_a man_n hope_v that_o a_o form_n of_o prayer_n so_o universal_o receive_v and_o so_o much_o esteem_v can_v be_v lay_v by_o without_o reluctancy_n in_o those_o who_o have_v be_v so_o long_o accustom_a to_o it_o or_o call_v obstinacy_n or_o dote_v in_o they_o if_o they_o do_v not_o present_o submit_v to_o every_o new_a nothing_o which_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o then_o disputable_a authority_n shall_v be_v lay_v before_o they_o and_o though_o our_o author_n do_v profess_v that_o in_o the_o agitate_v of_o this_o controversy_n pro_fw-la and_o con_v he_o will_v reserve_v his_o private_a opinion_n to_o himself_o yet_o he_o discover_v it_o too_o plain_o in_o the_o present_a passage_n quid_fw-la verba_fw-la audiam_fw-la cum_fw-la facta_fw-la videam_fw-la be_v a_o good_a rule_n here_o he_o must_v needs_o show_v his_o private_a opinion_n in_o this_o point_n say_v he_o what_o he_o can_v who_o make_v a_o question_n whether_o the_o adhesion_n of_o the_o people_n general_o to_o the_o public_a liturgy_n be_v build_v on_o obstinacy_n and_o dote_a or_o on_o love_n and_o constancy_n but_o if_o it_o must_v be_v obstinacy_n or_o dote_v in_o the_o generality_n of_o the_o people_n to_o adhere_v so_o cordial_o unto_o the_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n i_o marvel_v what_o it_o must_v be_v call_v in_o stephen_n marshal_n of_o essex_n that_o great_a bell-wether_n for_o a_o time_n of_o the_o presbyterian_o who_o have_v have_v a_o chief_a hand_n in_o compile_v the_o directory_n do_v notwithstanding_o marry_v his_o own_o daughter_n by_o the_o form_n prescribe_v in_o the_o common-prayer_n book_n and_o have_v so_o do_v pay_v down_o five_o pound_n immediate_o to_o the_o churchwarden_n of_o the_o parish_n as_o the_o fine_a or_o forfeiture_n for_o use_v any_o other_o form_n of_o marriage_n then_o that_o of_o the_o directory_n the_o like_a to_o which_o i_o have_v credible_o be_v inform_v be_v do_v by_o mr._n knightly_a of_o fawsley_n on_o the_o like_a occasion_n and_o probable_o by_o many_o other_o of_o the_o same_o strain_n also_o with_o like_a favour_n he_o behold_v the_o two_o university_n as_o he_o dâe_v the_o liturgy_n and_o hard_o it_o be_v to_o say_v which_o he_o injure_v most_o and_o first_o beginning_n with_o oxford_n he_o let_v we_o know_v that_o fol._n 231._o late_o certain_a delegate_n from_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n plead_v their_o privilege_n before_o the_o committee_n of_o parliament_n that_o they_o be_v only_o visitable_a by_o the_o king_n and_o such_o who_o shall_v be_v depute_v by_o he_o but_o their_o allegation_n be_v not_o of_o proof_n against_o the_o paramount_n power_n of_o parliament_n the_o rather_o because_o a_o passage_n in_o a_o article_n at_o the_o rendition_n of_o oxford_n be_v urge_v against_o they_o wherein_o they_o be_v subject_v to_o such_o a_o visitation_n our_o author_n here_o subject_n the_o university_n of_o oxford_n to_o the_o power_n of_o the_o parliament_n and_o that_o not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o that_o paramount_n power_n which_o he_o ascribe_v unto_o the_o parliament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o two_o house_n of_o parliament_n for_o so_o we_o be_v to_o understand_v he_o above_o all_o estate_n but_o also_o in_o regard_n of_o a_o article_n concern_v the_o surrendry_a of_o oxford_n by_o which_o that_o university_n be_v subject_v to_o such_o visitation_n i_o find_v indeed_o that_o it_o be_v agree_v on_o by_o the_o commissioner_n on_o both_o side_n touch_v the_o surrendry_n of_o that_o city_n that_o the_o chancellor_n master_n and_o scholar_n of_o the_o university_n of_o oxon_n and_o the_o governor_n and_o student_n of_o christ-church_n of_o king_n h._n 8._o his_o foundation_n and_o all_o other_o head_n and_o governor_n 13._o master_n fellow_n and_o scholar_n of_o the_o college_n hall_n and_o body_n corporate_a and_o society_n of_o the_o same_o university_n and_o the_o publiâââ_n professor_n and_o reader_n and_o the_o orator_n thereoâ_n and_o all_o other_o person_n belong_v to_o the_o say_a university_n or_o to_o any_o college_n or_o hall_n therein_o shall_v and_o may_v according_a to_o their_o statute_n charter_n and_o custom_n enjoy_v their_o ancient_a form_n of_o government_n subordinate_a to_o the_o immediate_a authority_n and_o power_n of_o parliament_n but_o i_o find_v not_o that_o any_o of_o the_o head_n or_o delegate_n of_o that_o university_n be_v present_a at_o the_o make_n of_o this_o article_n or_o consent_v âo_o it_o or_o thoâght_v themselves_o oblige_v by_o any_o thing_n contain_v in_o it_o nor_o indeed_o can_v it_o stand_v with_o reason_n that_o they_o shall_v wave_v the_o patronage_n of_o a_o gracious_a sovereign_n who_o have_v be_v a_o nurse_n father_n to_o they_o and_o put_v themselves_o under_o the_o arbitrary_a power_n of_o those_o who_o they_o know_v mind_v nothing_o but_o destruction_n towards_o they_o and_o that_o the_o university_n do_v not_o think_v itself_o oblige_v by_o any_o thing_n contain_v in_o that_o article_n appear_v even_o by_o our_o author_n himself_o who_o tell_v we_o in_o this_o very_a passage_n that_o the_o delegate_n from_o the_o university_n plead_v their_o privilege_n before_o the_o committee_n of_o parliament_n that_o they_o be_v only_o visitable_a by_o the_o king_n and_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v depute_v by_o he_o which_o certain_o they_o have_v never_o do_v unless_o our_o author_n will_v conclude_v they_o to_o be_v fool_n or_o madman_n have_v they_o before_o submit_v to_o that_o paramount_n power_n which_o he_o adscribe_v unto_o the_o house_n nor_o do_v the_o house_n of_o parliament_n find_v themselves_o impower_v by_o this_o clause_n of_o the_o article_n to_o obtrude_v any_o such_o visitation_n on_o they_o and_o therefore_o when_o the_o delegate_n have_v plead_v and_o prove_v their_o privilege_n a_o commission_n for_o a_o visitation_n be_v issue_v by_o the_o two_o house_n of_o parliament_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o king_n but_o under_o the_o new_a broad_a seal_n which_o themselves_o have_v make_v which_o notwithstanding_o the_o university_n stand_v still_o on_o their_o own_o defence_n in_o regard_n that_o though_o the_o king_n name_n be_v use_v in_o that_o commission_n yet_o they_o know_v well_o that_o he_o have_v never_o give_v his_o consent_n unto_o it_o whereupon_o follow_v that_o great_a alteration_n both_o ãâã_d the_o head_n and_o member_n of_o most_o college_n which_o our_o author_n speak_v of_o nor_o deal_v he_o much_o more_o candid_o in_o relate_v the_o proceed_n of_o the_o visitation_n which_o be_v make_v in_o cambridge_n the_o visitor_n whereof_o as_o act_v by_o the_o paramount_n power_n of_o parliament_n he_o more_o sensible_o favour_v than_o the_o poor_a sufferer_n or_o malignant_a member_n as_o he_o call_v they_o of_o that_o university_n for_o whereas_o the_o author_n of_o the_o book_n call_v querela_fw-la cantabrigionsis_fw-la have_v tell_v we_o of_o a_o oath_n of_o discovery_n obtrude_v by_o the_o visitor_n upon_o several_a person_n whereby_o they_o be_v swear_v to_o detect_v one_o another_o 168._o even_o their_o dear_a friend_n our_o author_n who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o storm_n seem_v not_o satisfy_v in_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o relation_n must_v write_v to_o mr._n ash_n who_o be_v one_o of_o those_o visitor_n to_o be_v inform_v in_o that_o which_o he_o know_v before_o and_o on_o the_o read_n of_o mr._n ash_n his_o answer_n declare_v express_o that_o no_o such_o oath_n be_v tender_v by_o he_o to_o that_o university_n but_o first_o mr._n ash_n do_v not_o absolute_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o oath_n but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o stranger_n to_o it_o and_o possible_o he_o may_v be_v so_o far_o a_o stranger_n to_o it_o as_o not_o to_o be_v a_o actor_n in_o that_o part_n of_o the_o tragedy_n second_o mr._n ash_n only_o say_v that_o he_o can_v call_v to_o mind_n that_o any_o such_o thing_n be_v move_v by_o the_o earl_n of_o manchester_n and_o yet_o i_o ârow_v such_o a_o thing_n may_v be_v move_v by_o the_o earl_n of_o manchester_n though_o mr._n ash_n after_o so_o many_o year_n be_v willing_a not_o
their_o young_a son_n some_o earldom_n or_o other_o until_o the_o time_n of_o edward_n the_o three_o after_o which_o time_n they_o be_v invest_v with_o the_o title_n of_o duke_n as_o appear_v evident_o to_o any_o who_o be_v study_v in_o their_o chronology_n but_o that_o they_o or_o any_o of_o they_o be_v earl_n by_o birth_n be_v a_o new_a piece_n of_o learning_n for_o which_o if_o the_o historian_n can_v give_v i_o any_o good_a proof_n i_o shall_v thank_v he_o for_o it_o fol._n 278._o henry_n the_o eight_o thus_o cozen_v into_o some_o kindness_n both_o by_o his_o own_o power_n and_o purse_n make_v charles_n emperor_n and_o the_o french_a king_n his_o prisoner_n 1519._o neither_o so_o nor_o so_o for_o first_o though_o king_n henry_n do_v contribute_v both_o his_o power_n and_o purse_n to_o the_o take_n of_o the_o french_a king_n prisoner_n yet_o to_o the_o make_n of_o charles_n emperor_n he_o contribute_v neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o and_o second_o though_o charles_n be_v create_v emperor_n anno_fw-la 1519_o yet_o the_o french_a king_n be_v not_o take_v prisoner_n till_o six_o year_n after_o anno_fw-la 1525._o fol._n 31â_n oswald_z unite_z the_o crown_n of_o england_n and_o scotland_n which_o be_v ãâã_d afterward_o for_o many_o age_n 3â_n that_o oswald_n king_n of_o northumberland_n here_o mention_v be_v a_o puissant_a prince_n as_o be_v the_o nine_o monarch_n of_o the_o english_a i_o shall_v easy_o grant_v but_o that_o he_o unite_v the_o two_o kingdom_n of_o england_n and_o scotland_n be_v not_o any_o where_o find_v our_o author_n therefore_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o his_o unite_n the_o two_o realm_n of_o deâra_n and_o pernicia_n part_n of_o which_o last_o have_v for_o long_a time_n be_v account_v part_n of_o scotland_n which_o after_o his_o decease_n be_v again_o divide_v fol._n 317._o who_o result_v notwithstanding_o be_v not_o to_o be_v obtrude_v on_o the_o sâculars_n to_o be_v observe_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o law_n until_o they_o be_v allow_v by_o assent_n of_o the_o king_n and_o both_o house_n a_o error_n far_o more_o pardonable_a in_o our_o present_a author_n to_o who_o the_o concernment_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o so_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v or_o study_v then_o in_o our_o church_n historian_n where_o before_o we_o have_v it_o and_o which_o have_v have_v a_o full_a confutation_n in_o our_o animadversion_n to_o which_o for_o brevity_n sake_n i_o shall_v now_o refer_v fol._n 320._o rory_n duke_n of_o solia_n from_o france_n either_o the_o printer_n or_o the_o author_n be_v mistake_v here_o the_o ambassador_n who_o be_v send_v from_o france_n be_v neither_o call_v rory_n nor_o duke_n of_o solia_n but_o marquis_n of_o rhosney_n create_v afterward_o duke_n of_o sully_n and_o lord_n high_a treasurer_n of_o that_o kingdom_n by_o king_n henry_n 4._o a_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o purposely_o select_v for_o that_o employment_n of_o who_o it_o be_v report_v in_o the_o conference_n at_o hampton-court_n that_o have_v observe_v the_o order_n and_o gravity_n of_o our_o church_n service_n in_o the_o cathedral_n church_n at_o cânâerbury_n he_o be_v hear_v to_o say_v that_o if_o the_o like_a have_v be_v use_v in_o france_n there_o will_v have_v be_v many_o thousand_o of_o protestant_n more_a than_o be_v at_o that_o present_a fol._n 329._o ceâil_a foâ_n his_o good_a service_n be_v create_v earl_n of_o salisbury_n that_o be_v to_o say_v for_o so_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v for_o his_o activity_n and_o diligence_n in_o discover_v the_o powder-treason_n but_o he_o be_v earl_n of_o salisbury_n before_o that_o discovery_n call_v so_o by_o the_o historian_n himself_o in_o the_o course_n of_o thaâ_n naârative_n and_o make_v so_o by_o king_n james_n in_o the_o mây_n forego_v at_o what_o time_n also_o his_o brother_n thomas_n lord_n burley_n be_v make_v earl_n of_o excester_n the_o like_a mistake_n i_o find_v in_o the_o advancement_n of_o thomas_n lord_n buckhurst_n to_o the_o earldom_n of_o dorcet_v place_v by_o the_o author_n fol._n 342._o in_o the_o year_n 1605._o whereas_o indeed_o he_o be_v create_v earl_n of_o dorcet_v in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o king_n james_n march_v 13._o anno_fw-la 1603._o fol._n 333._o the_o earl_n of_o flanders_n etc._n etc._n be_v by_o storm_n cast_v upon_o our_o coast_n etc._n etc._n be_v fain_o to_o yield_v to_o all_o the_o king_n demand_n in_o deliver_v up_o the_o countess_n of_o warwick_n and_o other_o fugitive_n resident_a in_o flanders_n this_o story_n be_v well_o mean_v but_o not_o right_o tell_v there_o be_v at_o that_o time_n no_o earl_n of_o flanders_n common_o so_o call_v to_o be_v cast_v upon_o the_o coast_n of_o england_n nor_o any_o such_o woman_n as_o a_o countess_n of_o warwick_n who_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o can_v be_v afraid_a of_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o person_n here_o mean_v be_v philip_n king_n of_o castille_n duke_n of_o burgundy_n earl_n of_o flanders_n etc._n etc._n who_o in_o his_o return_n from_o spain_n be_v drive_v by_o tempest_n on_o the_o coast_n of_o england_n and_o be_v royal_o feast_v by_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o be_v detain_v here_o till_o he_o have_v deliver_v into_o the_o king_n hand_n the_o earl_n of_o suffolk_n who_o have_v flee_v into_o the_o netherland_n for_o protection_n and_o begin_v to_o work_v new_a trouble_n against_o his_o sovereign_n the_o story_n whereof_o we_o have_v at_o large_a in_o the_o history_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o write_v by_o the_o lord_n viscount_n st._n alban_n from_o fol._n 222._o to_o 225._o fol._n 334_o the_o fate_n of_o that_o family_n evermore_o false_a to_o the_o crown_n this_o speak_v of_o the_o piercy_n earl_n of_o northumberland_n too_o often_o false_a to_o the_o crown_n though_o not_o always_o so_o for_o henry_n the_o second_o earl_n of_o this_o family_n lose_v his_o life_n fight_v for_o king_n henry_n the_o six_o in_o the_o battle_n of_o st._n alban_n as_o henry_n his_o son_n and_o successor_n also_o do_v at_o the_o battle_n of_o âowton_a and_o so_o do_v henry_n the_o five_o earl_n in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o seven_o for_o his_o fidelity_n to_o that_o king_n in_o a_o tumultuous_a insurrection_n of_o the_o common_a people_n not_o to_o say_v any_o thing_n of_o his_o son_n and_o successor_n who_o die_v without_o any_o imputation_n of_o such_o disloyalty_n fol._n 362._o zutphen_n and_o gelder_n do_v of_o right_o belong_v to_o the_o dukâ_n arnold_n who_o be_v prisoner_n with_o the_o last_o duke_n of_o burgundy_n who_o die_v before_o nancy_n that_o duke_n intrude_v upon_o his_o possession_n etc._n etc._n 40._o not_o so_o it_o be_v not_o arnold_n duke_n of_o gelder_n that_o be_v imprison_v by_o charles_n duke_n of_o burgundy_n but_o his_o son_n adolphus_n who_o have_v most_o ungratious_o imprison_v his_o age_a father_n be_v vanquish_v by_o duke_n charles_n and_o by_o he_o keep_v prisoner_n and_o the_o old_a duke_n restore_v again_o to_o his_o power_n and_o liberty_n in_o a_o grateful_a acknowledgement_n of_o which_o favour_n he_o make_v a_o donation_n of_o his_o estate_n to_o duke_n charles_n and_o his_o heir_n to_o commence_v after_o his_o decease_n though_o it_o take_v no_o effect_n till_o conquer_a under_o that_o pretence_n by_o charles_n the_o five_o unite_n it_o unto_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o belgic_a province_n anno_fw-la 1538._o fol._n 423._o sir_n william_n seymour_n grandchild_n to_o the_o three_o son_n and_o the_o heir_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o hertford_n create_v by_o henry_n the_o eight_o who_o sister_n he_o marry_v etc._n etc._n and_o be_v thus_o near_o the_o crown_n etc._n etc._n in_o this_o business_n of_o sir_n william_n seymer_n now_o marquis_n of_o hertford_n there_o be_v two_o mistake_n for_o first_o the_o earl_n of_o hertford_n from_o who_o he_o derive_v his_o descent_n marry_v not_o any_o of_o the_o sister_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o he_o have_v but_o two_o wife_n in_o all_o the_o first_o the_o daughter_n of_o filol_n of_o woodland_n from_o who_o come_v baronet_n seymer_n of_o the_o west_n the_o second_o anne_z daughter_n of_o sir_n edward_n and_o sister_n to_o sir_n michael_n stanhop_n from_o who_o descend_v the_o house_n of_o hertford_n still_o in_o be_v it_o be_v true_a king_n henry_n marry_v a_o sister_n of_o sir_n edward_n seymer_n by_o he_o create_v earl_n of_o hertford_n but_o not_o é_fw-fr contra_fw-la the_o earl_n of_o hertford_n marry_v not_o with_o a_o sister_n of_o he_o second_o the_o nearness_n of_o this_o house_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n come_v not_o from_o any_o such_o marriage_n of_o this_o first_o earl_n with_o that_o king_n sister_n but_o from_o the_o marriage_n of_o edward_n the_o second_o earl_n with_o a_o niece_n of_o that_o king_n that_o be_v to_o say_v with_o ãâã_d daughter_n of_o henry_n duke_n of_o suffolk_n and_o of_o fâaâces_n his_o wife_n
fail_v in_o their_o person_n sentâtheir_o ãâ¦ã_z i_o more_o admire_v at_o this_o gross_a pieââ_n of_o ignorance_n then_o at_o all_o the_o rest_n silesia_n moravia_n and_o ãâ¦ã_z incorporate_a with_o the_o realm_n of_o ãâã_d be_v nâver_o qualify_v with_o send_v any_o elector_n âor_a thâ_n choice_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o three_o elector_n which_o he_o mean_v be_v the_o count_n palatine_n of_o the_o rââne_n the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o the_o marquis_n of_o brandenburg_n and_o they_o not_o come_v in_o person_n to_o the_o ãâã_d at_o frackford_n appear_v there_o by_o their_o ambassador_n as_o at_o other_o time_n a_o like_a mistake_n but_o far_o more_o pardonable_a oâcurreth_v fol._n 484._o where_o daâmstal_n be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o town_n of_o bohemia_n whereas_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o town_n of_o the_o land_n of_o hâssen_n the_o whole_a territory_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n be_v interpose_v betwixt_o this_o town_n and_o the_o near_a part_n of_o that_o kingdom_n fol._n 489._o the_o lord_n marcher_n after_o the_o conquest_n be_v resident_a upon_o the_o confine_n and_o border_n of_o the_o welsh_a and_o other_o place_n not_o subdue_v man_n of_o valour_n of_o high_a blood_n of_o the_o norman_n with_o the_o name_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o chester_n that_o the_o lord_n marcher_n on_o the_o border_n of_o wales_n be_v at_o first_o many_o in_o number_n as_o it_o after_o follow_v be_v a_o truth_n undoubted_a but_o their_o power_n be_v contract_v into_o few_o hand_n one_o of_o they_o roger_n mortimer_n by_o name_n be_v by_o king_n edward_n the_o three_o make_v earl_n of_o march_n the_o earldom_n of_o chester_n be_v of_o another_o foundation_n confer_v by_o william_n the_o conqueror_n upon_o hugh_n surname_v lupus_n son_n to_o the_o viscount_n of_o auranche_n in_o normandy_n with_o all_o the_o rite_n and_o privilege_n of_o a_o county_n palatine_n to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o heir_n for_o ever_o so_o that_o this_o honour_n be_v appropriate_v to_o the_o heir_n of_o that_o house_n be_v not_o communicable_a unto_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o marcher_n nor_o can_v those_o marcher_n claim_v the_o stile_n and_o privilege_n of_o earl_n of_o chester_n fol._n 490._o sir_n edward_n montague_n have_v three_o son_n edward_z the_o elder_a knight_n of_o the_o bath_n etc._n etc._n the_o author_n here_o be_v much_o mistake_v in_o the_o house_n of_o the_o montague_n for_o first_o that_o edward_n montague_n who_o be_v ãâ¦ã_z etc._n etc._n be_v not_o brother_n to_o james_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n aâd_n henry_n earl_n of_o manchester_n but_o their_o brother_n son_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o son_n of_o another_o eâward_a their_o elder_a brother_n second_o beside_o that_o edward_z james_n and_o henry_n there_o be_v another_o brother_n who_o the_o author_n name_v not_o though_o he_o can_v not_o choose_v but_o know_v the_o man_n viz._n sir_n sidney_n monââââ_n one_o oâ_n the_o master_n of_o the_o request_n to_o the_o late_a king_n ãâã_d therefore_o to_o set_v this_o matter_n right_a i_o be_o to_o let_v both_o he_o and_o his_o reader_n know_v that_o sr._n edward_n montague_n chief_a justice_n ân_o the_o time_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o be_v father_n of_o another_o edward_n who_o live_v peaceable_o and_o noble_o in_o his_o own_o country_n to_o who_o succeed_v a_o three_o edwârd_n who_o ãâ¦ã_z in_o the_o war_n and_o gain_v the_o reputation_n of_o a_o good_a commander_n the_o elder_a brother_n of_o james_n henry_n and_o ãâã_d before_o mention_v and_o the_o father_n of_o a_o four_o edââââ_n who_o be_v make_v knight_n of_o the_o bath_n at_o the_o coronation_n ãâ¦ã_z anno_fw-la 1â03_n and_o afterward_o create_v lord_n ãâã_d of_o boughâon_n in_o the_o ninâteenth_o year_n of_o that_o king_n anno_fw-la 1621._o which_o honourable_a title_n be_v now_o enjoy_v by_o his_o son_n another_z edward_z anno._n 1658._o and_o three_o thââgh_a â_o grant_v that_o dr._n james_n montagâe_v bishop_n of_o winchâster_n the_o second_o brother_n of_o the_o four_o be_v of_o great_a power_n and_o favour_n in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n james_n and_o may_v have_v free_a access_n into_o the_o bedchamber_n of_o that_o king_n whensoever_o he_o please_v yeâ_n that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o bed_n chamber_n as_o the_o author_n say_v that_o iâ_n to_o say_v admit_v former_o thereunto_o and_o one_o of_o that_o number_n i_o do_v more_o than_o doubt_n fol._n 506._o then_o come_v john_n howard_n etc._n etc._n create_v by_o richard_n the_o ãâã_d duke_n of_o northfolk_n but_o not_o earl_n marshal_n in_o this_o and_o in_o the_o ââst_n that_o follow_v touch_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o earl_n marshal_n there_o aâe_v many_o mistake_v fâr_n first_o tâis_fw-la john_n lord_n howard_n be_v by_o richard_n the_o three_o âot_n only_o create_v duke_n of_o northfolk_n but_o earl_n marâââll_v also_o as_o appear_v by_o camdân_n folly_n 483._o second_o as_o well_o thomas_n earl_n of_o surrey_n the_o son_n of_o this_o ãâã_d as_o anâthâr_n thomas_n the_o son_n of_o that_o thomas_n be_v both_o advanced_a ãâã_d the_o office_n of_o earl_n marshal_v as_o be_v affirm_v by_o such_o as_o have_v write_v the_o genealogy_n of_o this_o noble_a family_n three_o that_o thomas_n howard_n who_o queen_n mary_n restore_v unto_o the_o office_n of_o earl_n marshal_n be_v not_o the_o grandchild_a of_o thomas_n mâwbray_n âut_v the_o grandchild_n of_o the_o grandchild_n of_o the_o daughter_n of_o that_o thomas_n mowbray_n as_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o who_o shall_v search_v that_o pedigree_n but_o this_o perhaps_o may_v be_v a_o error_n of_o the_o printer_n in_o give_v we_o the_o name_n of_o thomas_n mowbray_n for_o thomas_n howard_n four_o though_o robert_n deuârâux_n earl_n of_o essex_n be_v by_o our_o author_n place_v next_o after_o this_o last_o thomâs_n hâward_n in_o the_o office_n of_o marshal_n yet_o sure_o it_o be_v that_o georg_n talbot_n earl_n of_o shrewbury_n come_v in_o between_o they_o advance_v unto_o that_o dignity_n by_o queen_n elizabeth_n anno_fw-la 157â_n fol._n 507._o he_o ãâã_d the_o eminent_a structure_n of_o the_o library_n of_o st._n johns_n in_o cambridge_n where_o he_o have_v be_v master_n for_o many_o year_n this_o speak_v of_o dr._n william_n then_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n and_o lord_n keeper_n who_o certain_o be_v never_o master_n of_o that_o college_n though_o by_o his_o power_n and_o and_o party_n in_o that_o society_n he_o advance_v dr._n gwin_n who_o have_v be_v his_o tutor_n unto_o that_o place_n as_o be_v affirm_v in_o the_o church_n history_n of_o bâitain_n lib._n 11._o fol._n 225._o it_o may_v be_v mr._n williams_n be_v at_o that_o time_n of_o the_o same_o mind_n with_o âharles_n martâl_n of_o who_o it_o be_v affirm_v that_o he_o choose_v rather_o to_o make_v a_o king_n then_o to_o be_v a_o king_n non_fw-la sword_n regnâre_o sed_fw-la râgibus_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z as_o the_o old_a verse_n have_v it_o or_o else_o perhaps_o we_o may_v say_v of_o he_o as_o tâcitus_n do_v of_o mutianâs_n cui_fw-la facilâus_fw-la erât_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o he_o to_o procure_v the_o mastership_n for_o another_o then_o to_o obtain_v it_o for_o himself_o but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v it_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v carry_v by_o strong_a ãâã_d canvas_n of_o which_o nation_n both_o the_o pupil_n and_o the_o scholar_n be_v as_o appear_z by_o these_o hâxameters_n follow_v in_o which_o the_o four_o competitor_n be_v thus_o lay_v before_o we_o fol._n ãâã_d thâ_n ãâã_d of_o that_o protestation_n ãâã_d meââ_n ãâ¦ã_z regni_fw-la negotiis_fw-la but_o leave_v out_o quibusdam_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z particular_a case_n as_o the_o king_n ãâ¦ã_z this_o speak_v of_o a_o protestation_n enter_v bââome_v of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o anno_fw-la 1621._o concern_v ãâã_d of_o their_o pretend_a right_n and_o privilege_n in_o which_o they_o ãâã_d mistaâen_o and_o i_o wonder_v the_o author_n do_v not_o see_v it_o in_o ãâã_d the_o veây_a ground_n on_o which_o they_o build_v it_o for_o by_o the_o writ_n of_o summons_n the_o commons_o be_v not_o call_v to_o consult_v of_o any_o thing_n either_o great_a of_o little_a difficult_a or_o not_o difficult_a whatsomever_o it_o be_v but_o only_a ãâã_d consentiendum_fw-la &_o faciendum_fw-la to_o consent_v to_o and_o perform_v such_o thing_n as_o by_o the_o great_a council_n of_o the_o realmâ_n consist_v of_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a shall_v be_v then_o ordain_v as_o by_o the_o very_a ywrit_a itself_o do_v at_o large_a appear_v by_o which_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o commons_o assemble_v in_o parliament_n be_v of_o themselves_o so_o far_o from_o be_v any_o ãâã_d oâ_n that_o supreme_a couât_n that_o they_o be_v not_o to_o be_v count_v for_o a_o part_n of_o the_o king_n great_a council_n so_o that_o the_o foundation_n be_v ãâã_d the_o superstructure_n can_v not_o stand_v which_o be_v build_v upon_o
some_o of_o the_o ãâã_d of_o those_o who_o have_v possess_v themselves_o of_o the_o crown_n âands_v in_o his_o âathers_n minority_n in_o which_o course_n he_o may_v hope_v to_o find_v good_a success_n without_o noise_n or_o dangeâ_n and_o âf_o this_o may_v be_v call_v the_o add_v of_o fuel_n to_o the_o fiâe_n of_o ãâ¦ã_z king_n will_v find_v a_o safe_a way_n to_o recover_v his_o own_o ãâ¦ã_z from_o he_o by_o power_n and_o pride_n unless_o he_o do_v ãâ¦ã_z strong_a hand_n which_o find_v no_o resistance_n for_o which_o good_a service_n if_o he_o be_v afterward_o knight_v and_o make_v second_o secretary_n of_o estate_n the_o principal_n be_v call_v lord_n secretary_n in_o the_o stile_n of_o that_o kingdom_n it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o he_o have_v worthy_o deserve_v for_o his_o sound_a advice_n ârom_o the_o title_n and_o the_o introduction_n proceed_v we_o next_o unto_o the_o history_n itself_o in_o which_o the_o first_o mistake_n we_o meet_v with_o ãâã_d the_o place_n of_o the_o funeral_n of_o king_n james_n on_o the_o 14_o of_o may_n which_o mr._n h._n l._n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o reign_n of_o king_n chaâls_n have_v ãâ¦ã_z on_o the_o four_o in_o both_o erroneous_o alike_o but_o the_o ãâã_d of_o the_o âormer_a history_n have_v correct_v his_o error_n by_o the_o ãâ¦ã_z and_o place_v it_o right_o on_o the_o seven_o which_o the_o ãâ¦ã_z historian_n may_v have_v do_v also_o have_v so_o thorough_o ãâ¦ã_z all_o the_o passage_n in_o those_o observation_n ãâ¦ã_z land_n have_v nothing_o but_o foul_a weather_n triste_fw-fr &_o lugubre_fw-la coelum_fw-la when_o she_o be_v at_o the_o sea_n and_o the_o worst_a of_o foul_a weather_n from_o the_o time_n of_o her_o land_n to_o the_o very_a minute_n of_o her_o death_n the_o like_a tempestuous_a land_n be_v observe_v to_o have_v happen_v to_o the_o princess_n catharine_n daughter_n of_o ferdinand_n and_o if_o bellâ_n king_n of_o spain_n when_o she_o come_v hither_o to_o be_v marry_v to_o prince_n arthur_n elder_a son_n to_o king_n henry_n 7_o which_o afterward_o be_v look_v on_o as_o a_o sad_a presage_n of_o those_o calaââities_n which_o happen_v to_o that_o pious_a but_o unfortunate_a lady_n in_o the_o last_o part_n of_o her_o life_n and_o certain_o such_o presage_n be_v neither_o to_o be_v reject_v as_o superstitious_a nor_o too_o much_o rely_v on_o as_o infallible_a such_o a_o middle_a course_n be_v to_o be_v steeâed_v in_o such_o conjectural_o as_o be_v advise_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o prophetical_a or_o presage_a dream_n not_o wilful_o to_o be_v slight_v nor_o too_o much_o regard_v âol_n 6._o the_o parliament_n to_o be_v subordinate_a not_o coordinate_a with_o the_o prince_n etc._n etc._n though_o king_n charles_n unadvised_o make_v himself_o a_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n which_o the_o parliament_n will_v never_o acquit_v he_o a_o passage_n which_o the_o author_n like_v well_o enough_o and_o hope_n the_o reader_n will_v do_v the_o like_a as_o it_o come_v from_o himself_o but_o will_v not_o let_v it_o go_v uncensured_a in_o the_o observator_n it_o be_v note_v in_o the_o observation_n p._n 62._o that_o the_o king_n have_v pass_v away_o the_o bishop_n vote_n in_o parliament_n do_v after_o by_o a_o strange_a improvidence_n in_o a_o message_n or_o declaration_n send_v from_o york_n the_o 17._o of_o june_n reckon_v himself_o as_o one_o of_o the_o three_o estate_n which_o be_v once_o slip_v from_o his_o pen_n and_o take_v up_o by_o some_o lead_a man_n in_o the_o house_n of_o ââââament_n it_o never_o be_v let_v fall_v again_o in_o the_o whole_a agitation_n of_o those_o controversy_n which_o be_v bandy_v up_o and_o down_o between_o they_o our_o author_n say_v the_o same_o thing_n though_o in_o few_o word_n and_o yet_o correct_v the_o observator_fw-la for_o taâing_a notice_n of_o the_o king_n strange_a improvidence_n in_o a_o message_n ãâ¦ã_z june_n 17._o where_o he_o reckon_v himself_o as_o one_o of_o the_o ãâ¦ã_z member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n fol._n 100l_n for_o which_o he_o ãâã_d to_o call_v he_o to_o a_o further_a account_n in_o ãâ¦ã_z and_o so_o perhaps_o he_o may_v in_o a_o second_o edition_n of_o his_o history_n there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n to_o be_v find_v in_o this_o ãâã_d counsel_n be_v privy_a and_o public_a his_o privy_a council_n by_o his_o own_o ãâ¦ã_z electionââ_n public_a his_o parliament_n peer_n and_o people_n in_o these_o word_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o be_v inquire_v after_o first_o why_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o name_v as_o member_n of_o this_o public_a council_n and_o second_o why_o the_o people_n be_v admit_v art_n thereof_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v account_v of_o as_o necessary_a member_n of_o this_o public_a council_n appear_v by_o the_o ãâã_d write_v of_o summons_n by_o which_o they_o be_v several_o and_o respective_o call_v to_o attend_v in_o parliament_n in_o which_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o the_o king_n by_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o privy_a council_n have_v call_v a_o parliament_n unto_o this_o end_n ut_fw-la cum_fw-la pralatis_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z regââ_n colloquium_fw-la haâeret_fw-la that_o he_o for_o his_o part_n may_v confer_v with_o the_o prelatâ_n peer_n and_o great_a man_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o that_o they_o for_o their_o part_n super_fw-la dictis_fw-la negotiis_fw-la tractarenâ_n &_o coââilium_fw-la suum_fw-la impenderent_fw-la shall_v debate_v of_o all_o such_o difficult_a matter_n concern_v the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n as_o the_o king_n shall_v recommend_v unto_o they_o and_o give_v their_o faithful_a counsel_n in_o they_o according_o so_o that_o the_o author_n deal_v not_o well_o with_o the_o bishop_n in_o exclude_v they_o from_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o king_n public_a council_n and_o put_v the_o people_n in_o their_o room_n who_o never_o be_v behold_v as_o member_n of_o it_o till_o so_o make_v by_o our_o author_n the_o commons_o be_v call_v to_o parliament_n to_o no_o other_o purpose_n but_o ad_fw-la consenâiendum_fw-la &_o faciendum_fw-la to_o give_v consent_n and_o yield_v obedience_n to_o all_o such_o thing_n as_o by_o the_o great_a council_n of_o the_o kingdom_n ãâã_d communi_fw-la concilio_n regni_fw-la nostri_fw-la shall_v be_v then_o ordain_v but_o if_o our_o author_n say_v that_o he_o include_v the_o bishop_n in_o the_o name_n of_o peer_n though_o i_o allow_v his_o meaning_n and_o be_o able_a to_o defend_v he_o in_o it_o yet_o i_o must_v still_o except_v against_o his_o expression_n because_o not_o plain_a and_o full_a enough_o to_o the_o vulgar_a reader_n ibid._n but_o ãâã_d jame_v alter_v that_o course_n aâ_n best_o able_a of_o any_o his_o predecessor_n to_o speak_v for_o himself_o it_o be_v indeed_o the_o common_a usage_n of_o the_o king_n of_o england_n to_o speak_v to_o their_o people_n in_o parliament_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o chancellor_n not_o that_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o tell_v their_o own_o tale_n and_o express_v their_o own_o meâning_n but_o that_o it_o be_v hold_v for_o a_o point_n of_o state_n not_o to_o descend_v so_o much_o beneath_o themselves_o as_o to_o play_v the_o orator_n yet_o sometime_o as_o they_o see_v occasion_n they_o will_v speak_v their_o own_o mind_n in_o parliament_n and_o not_o trouble_v their_o chancellor_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o speech_n of_o king_n henry_n 7._o when_o he_o resolve_v to_o engage_v himself_o in_o a_o war_n with_o france_n a_o copy_n whereof_o we_o have_v in_o the_o history_n of_o his_o reign_n write_v by_o the_o lord_n viscount_n st._n alban_n which_o he_o thus_o begin_v my_o lord_n and_o you_o the_o commons_o when_o i_o purpose_v to_o make_v a_o war_n in_o britain_n by_o my_o lieutenant_n i_o make_v declaration_n thereof_o to_o you_o by_o my_o chancellor_n but_o now_o that_o i_o mean_v to_o make_v war_n upon_o france_n in_o person_n i_o will_v declare_v it_o to_o you_o myself_o &c._n &c._n fol._n 96._o but_o king_n james_n think_v himself_o a_o absolute_a master_n in_o the_o art_n of_o speak_v and_o desirous_a that_o his_o people_n shall_v think_v so_o too_o in_o the_o open_n of_o all_o his_o parliament_n and_o the_o beginning_n of_o each_o session_n and_o many_o occasion_n on_o the_o by_o use_v no_o tongue_n but_o his_o own_o which_o though_o it_o may_v seem_v necessary_a at_o the_o open_n of_o his_o first_o parliament_n to_o let_v the_o lord_n and_o commons_o see_v how_o sensible_a he_o be_v of_o that_o affection_n wherewith_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o nation_n have_v embrace_v his_o come_n to_o the_o crown_n yet_o the_o continual_a use_n thereof_o make_v he_o seem_v cheap_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o people_n then_o may_v stand_v with_o majecty_n nor_o be_v this_o all_o the_o inconvenience_n which_o ensue_v upon_o it_o for_o first_o it_o put_v a_o necessity_n upon_o his_o son_n and_o âââcessor_n of_o do_v the_o like_a to_o who_o it_o
of_o the_o english_a parliament_n till_o the_o time_n of_o king_n james._n it_o be_v true_a that_o on_o the_o petition_n of_o the_o commons_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o each_o parliament_n the_o king_n be_v gracious_o please_v to_o indulge_v they_o a_o freedom_n of_o reason_v and_o debate_n upon_o all_o such_o point_n as_o come_v before_o they_o and_o not_o to_o call_v they_o to_o account_v though_o they_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o his_o sense_n and_o meaning_n but_o than_o it_o be_v as_o true_a withal_o that_o they_o use_v not_o to_o waste_v time_n in_o tedious_a oration_n nor_o to_o declaim_v against_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o king_n and_o the_o present_a government_n or_o if_o they_o do_v the_o speaker_n hold_v it_o for_o a_o part_n of_o his_o office_n to_o cut_v they_o short_a and_o to_o remind_v they_o of_o their_o duty_n beside_o such_o afterclap_n as_o they_o be_v sure_a to_o find_v from_o a_o injure_a and_o incense_a sovereign_n but_o of_o this_o take_v along_o with_o you_o this_o short_a passage_n as_o i_o find_v it_o in_o a_o letter_n write_v ab_fw-la ignoto_fw-la to_o king_n charles_n in_o this_o very_a business_n of_o the_o duke_n may_v it_o please_v your_o excellent_a majesty_n to_o consider_v that_o this_o great_a opposition_n against_o the_o duke_n of_o buckingham_n be_v stir_v up_o and_o maintain_v by_o such_o who_o either_o malicious_o or_o ignorant_o and_o concurrent_o seek_v the_o debase_v of_o this_o free_a monarchy_n which_o because_o they_o find_v not_o yet_o ripe_a to_o attempt_v against_o the_o king_n himself_o they_o endeavour_v it_o through_o the_o duke_n side_n these_o man_n though_o agree_v in_o one_o mischief_n yet_o be_v of_o divers_a sort_n and_o humour_n viz._n 1._o meddle_v and_o busy_a person_n who_o take_v their_o first_o hint_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n james_n when_o the_o union_n be_v treat_v of_o in_o parliament_n that_o learned_a king_n give_v too_o much_o way_n to_o those_o popular_a speech_n by_o the_o frequent_a proof_n he_o have_v of_o his_o great_a ability_n in_o that_o kind_n since_o the_o time_n of_o h._n 6._o these_o parliamentary_a discourse_n be_v never_o suffer_v as_o be_v the_o certain_a symptom_n of_o subsequent_a rebellion_n civil_a war_n aâd_v the_o dethron_n of_o our_o king_n but_o these_o last_o twenty_o year_n most_o of_o the_o parliament_n man_n seek_v to_o improve_v the_o reputation_n of_o their_o wisdom_n by_o these_o declamation_n and_o no_o honest_a patriot_n dare_v oppose_v they_o lest_o he_o incur_v the_o imputation_n of_o a_o fool_n or_o a_o coward_n in_o his_o country_n cause_n but_o which_o be_v more_o the_o pride_n they_o take_v in_o their_o own_o suppose_a eloquence_n obtain_v another_o privilege_n for_o they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o liberty_n for_o any_o man_n to_o speak_v what_o he_o list_v and_o as_o long_o as_o he_o list_v without_o fear_n of_o be_v interrupt_v whereof_o king_n james_n take_v notice_n in_o his_o say_a speech_n to_o both_o the_o house_n at_o white-hall_n nor_o do_v they_o only_o take_v great_a delight_n in_o these_o tedious_a speech_n but_o at_o first_o disperse_v copy_n of_o they_o in_o writing_n and_o afterward_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v print_v that_o all_o the_o people_n may_v take_v notice_n of_o the_o zeal_n they_o have_v to_o the_o common_a liberty_n of_o the_o nation_n and_o the_o edge_n they_o head_n against_o the_o court_n and_o the_o king_n prerogative_n but_o to_o proceed_v fol._n 47._o to_o balance_v the_o duke_n enemy_n three_o person_n his_o confederate_n be_v make_v baron_n to_o compeer_n in_o the_o lord_n house_n the_o lord_n mandevil_n the_o elder_a son_n to_o the_o earl_n of_o manchester_n create_v by_o patent_n baron_fw-fr kimbolton_n grandison_n son_n to_o the_o create_a baron_n imbercourt_n and_o sir_n dudley_n carlton_n make_v baron_n tregate_v in_o which_o short_a passage_n there_o be_v as_o many_o mistake_n as_o line_n for_o first_o the_o lord_n mandevil_n be_v not_o create_v by_o patent_n lord_n kimbolton_n that_o title_n together_o with_o the_o tight_a of_o viscount_n mandevil_n have_v be_v confer_v upon_o his_o father_n by_o letter_n patent_n in_o the_o 18._o year_n of_o king_n james_n anno_fw-la 1620._o who_o afterward_o king_n charles_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o his_o reign_n make_v earl_n of_o manchester_n the_o meaning_n of_o our_o author_n be_v that_o sr._n edward_n montague_n common_o call_v lord_n mandevil_n be_v summon_v to_o the_o parliament_n by_o the_o title_n of_o lord_n kimbolton_n as_o be_v the_o custom_n in_o such_o case_n when_o the_o elder_a son_n of_o earl_n be_v call_v to_o parliament_n by_o the_o stile_n and_o title_n of_o their_o father_n barony_n second_o there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o baron_n as_o the_o baron_n tregate_v three_o sr._n dudley_n carlton_n be_v not_o create_v baron_n tregat_n but_o baron_n of_o imbercourt_n that_o be_v the_o name_n of_o a_o manor_n of_o he_o in_o the_o county_n of_o surry_n but_o four_a grandison_n son_n to_o the_o create_a baron_n imbercourt_n be_v either_o such_o a_o piece_n of_o negligence_n in_o not_o fill_v the_o blank_n or_o of_o ignorance_n in_o not_o know_v that_o noble_a person_n as_o be_v not_o often_o to_o be_v meet_v with_o and_o therefore_o to_o inform_v both_o our_o author_n and_o his_o reader_n also_o i_o must_v let_v they_o know_v that_o william_n de_fw-fr grandâson_n a_o noble_a burgundian_n lord_n ally_v to_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n the_o king_n of_o hungary_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o bavaria_n be_v bring_v into_o england_n by_o edmond_n earl_n of_o lancaster_n second_o son_n to_o king_n henry_n the_o 3._o by_o who_o bounty_n he_o be_v endow_v with_o fair_a possession_n and_o by_o his_o power_n advance_v unto_o the_o dignity_n of_o a_o english_a baron_n the_o estate_n be_v much_o increase_v by_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o daughter_n and_o heir_n of_o the_o lord_n tregoz_fw-mi fall_v by_o the_o heir_n general_a to_o the_o pateshul_n of_o bleâso_n in_o the_o county_n of_o bedford_n and_o by_o a_o daughter_n of_o that_o house_n to_o the_o house_n of_o the_o beauchamp_n by_o margaret_n the_o daughter_n and_o heir_n of_o sr._n john_n beauchamp_n of_o bletso_n the_o whole_a estate_n come_v by_o marriage_n to_o sr._n oliver_n st._n john_n from_o who_o elder_a son_n descend_v that_o sr._n oliver_n st._n john_n who_o queen_n elizabeth_n descend_v from_o the_o say_v margaret_n by_o john_n duke_n of_o somerset_n her_o second_o husband_n make_v lord_n st._n john_n of_o bletho_n in_o the_o first_o year_n of_o her_o reign_n from_o oliver_n st._n john_n the_o second_o son_n of_o the_o say_v margaret_n estate_v by_o his_o mother_n in_o the_o manor_n of_o lydiard_n tregoz_n near_o highworth_n in_o the_o county_n of_o wilts_n descend_v another_o oliver_n st._n john_n the_o second_o son_n of_o sr._n john_n st._n john_n of_o lydiard_n tregoz_n who_o have_v in_o defence_n of_o his_o father_n honour_n kill_v one_o captain_n best_o in_o st._n george_n field_n near_o southwark_n be_v fain_o to_o pass_v over_o into_o france_n where_o he_o remain_v until_o his_o friend_n about_o the_o queen_n have_v obtain_v his_o pardon_n to_o merit_v which_o and_o to_o avoid_v the_o danger_n which_o may_v happen_v to_o he_o by_o best_o acquaintance_n he_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o war_n of_o ireland_n where_o he_o perform_v such_o signal_n service_n against_o the_o rebel_n that_o pass_v from_o one_o command_n to_o another_o he_o come_v at_o last_o to_o be_v make_v lord_n deputy_n of_o ireland_n at_o what_o time_n he_o be_v create_v viscount_n grandison_n with_o reference_n to_o the_o first_o founder_n of_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o house_n and_o family_n that_o dignity_n entail_v on_o he_o and_o the_o heir_n male_n of_o his_o body_n and_o for_o want_v of_o such_o issue_n on_o the_o heir_n male_n of_o sr._n edward_n villers_n beget_v on_o the_o body_n of_o mrs._n barbara_n st._n john_n the_o new_a viscount_n niece_n according_a unto_o which_o remainder_n that_o honnurable_a title_n be_v enjoy_v by_o that_o branch_n of_o the_o house_n of_o villers_n but_o be_v the_o title_n of_o viscount_n grandison_n be_v limit_v to_o the_o realm_n of_o ireland_n to_o make_v he_o capable_a of_o a_o place_n in_o this_o present_a parliament_n he_o be_v create_v lord_n tregoz_n of_o highworth_n to_o he_o and_o to_o the_o heir_n male_n of_o his_o body_n without_o any_o remainder_n fol._n 62._o carlton_n go_v upon_o this_o errand_n and_o miss_v the_o french_a king_n at_o paris_n progress_v a_o tedious_a journey_n after_o that_o court_n to_o nantes_n in_o bohemia_n and_o here_o we_o have_v as_o great_a a_o error_n in_o geography_n as_o before_o in_o heraldry_n there_o be_v no_o such_o town_n as_o nantes_n in_o bohemia_n or_o if_o there_o be_v it_o have_v be_v too_o far_o off_o and_o too_o unsafe_a a_o
currant_n by_o queen_n elizabeth_n it_o be_v do_v as_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o to_o cry_v quit_v with_o the_o venetian_n who_o have_v raise_v the_o custom_n of_o our_o clâth_n and_o this_o be_v do_v say_v he_o without_o regret_n or_o complaint_n the_o general_a prosperity_n of_o the_o reign_n overshadow_v and_o her_o power_n command_v fol._n 133._o here_o than_o we_o have_v a_o imposition_n raise_v upon_o some_o commodity_n by_o the_o sole_a will_n anâ_n power_n of_o the_o queen_n not_o only_o without_o act_n of_o parliament_n but_o without_o any_o regret_n or_o complaint_n of_o the_o merchant_n as_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o and_o in_o the_o first_o he_o tell_v we_o true_a but_o not_o so_o in_o the_o last_o for_o the_o merchant_n have_v fee_v some_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o to_o befriend_v they_o in_o it_o it_o be_v move_v that_o some_o course_n may_v be_v take_v by_o the_o house_n to_o ease_v the_o merchant_n in_o thât_a point_n when_o present_o m._n secretary_n cecil_n address_v himself_o unto_o the_o speaker_n desire_v that_o that_o business_n may_v proceed_v no_o further_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v a_o noli_fw-la i_o tangere_fw-la part_n of_o the_o queen_n prerogative_n royal_a and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v dispute_v within_o those_o wall_n add_v wââhal_o that_o if_o ãâã_d proceed_v any_o further_a he_o must_v as_o he_o be_v in_o duty_n bind_v acquaint_v her_o majesty_n with_o the_o matter_n of_o who_o displeasure_n they_o will_v quick_o find_v themselves_o to_o be_v very_o sensible_a and_o so_o the_o business_n stop_v for_o that_o time_n though_o it_o break_v out_o afterward_o but_o little_a to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o merchant_n as_o in_o fine_a it_o prove_v it_o seem_v by_o this_o story_n that_o the_o commons_o challenge_v no_o such_o privilege_n in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n as_o they_o do_v afterward_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n charles_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o neither_o the_o king_n nor_o queen_n be_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v say_v or_o do_v within_o those_o wall_n until_o it_o be_v communicate_v to_o they_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o house_n for_o whereas_o the_o king_n in_o a_o speech_n make_v to_o both_o house_n on_o the_o 14_o of_o december_n 1641._o take_v notice_n of_o some_o dispute_n which_o have_v be_v raise_v in_o that_o house_n about_o the_o king_n power_n in_o press_a soldier_n for_o his_o war_n the_o commons_o vote_v this_o for_o a_o breach_n of_o privilege_n and_o gain_v so_o far_o upon_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o join_v together_o in_o this_o declaration_n to_o his_o majesty_n viz._n that_o among_o other_o privilege_n of_o parliament_n it_o be_v their_o ancient_a and_o undoubted_a right_n that_o his_o majesty_n ought_v not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o any_o matter_n in_o agitation_n and_o debate_n in_o either_o house_n of_o parliament_n but_o by_o their_o information_n and_o agreement_n but_o yet_o as_o ancient_a as_o it_o be_v the_o young_a man_n present_a have_v see_v the_o beginning_n and_o as_o undoubted_a as_o it_o be_v the_o old_a man_n there_o sit_v live_v to_o see_v the_o end_n of_o it_o and_o so_o much_o for_o that_o fol._n 136._o but_o they_o be_v all_o ten_o commit_v to_o several_a prison_n and_o on_o the_o first_o of_o may_n attorney-general_n noy_n send_v process_n out_o against_o they_o to_o appear_v in_o the_o star-chamber_n and_o answer_v his_o information_n there_o our_o author_n speak_v this_o of_o those_o ten_o person_n who_o have_v be_v guilty_a of_o that_o most_o unparalleled_a riot_n which_o be_v commit_v in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o at_o the_o dissolve_v of_o the_o last_o parliament_n at_o what_o time_n mr._n noy_n be_v not_o attorney-general_n nor_o in_o three_o year_n after_o and_o therefore_o can_v not_o send_v out_o process_n or_o make_v any_o information_n against_o they_o as_o be_v here_o affirm_v the_o attorney-general_n be_v at_o that_o time_n sir_n robert_n heath_n who_o not_o long_o after_o enter_v the_o like_a information_n against_o the_o earl_n of_o bedford_n somerset_z and_o clare_n sir_n robert_n cotton_n master_n selden_n mr._n st._n john_n for_o disperse_v a_o manuscript_n contain_v sundry_a project_n for_o raise_v money_n on_o the_o subject_a without_o the_o help_n of_o parliament_n as_o if_o it_o have_v be_v some_o design_n of_o the_o king_n or_o his_o council_n to_o enslave_v the_o nation_n concern_v which_o our_o present_a author_n tell_v we_o one_o thing_n and_o a_o absent_a author_n tell_v we_o another_o that_o which_o our_o present_a author_n tell_v we_o be_v that_o fol._n 140._o it_o be_v contrive_v at_o florence_n by_o sir_n robert_n dudley_n who_o descend_v from_o the_o dudlies_n earl_n of_o warwick_n and_o so_o he_o style_v himself_o that_o this_o book_n of_o project_n be_v contrive_v by_o sir_n robert_n dudley_n i_o be_o well_o assure_v and_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v also_o that_o he_o neither_o descend_v from_o the_o dudlies_n earl_n of_o warwick_n nor_o ever_o call_v himself_o by_o that_o title_n there_o be_v but_o three_o that_o hold_v the_o title_n of_o warwick_n viz._n john_n the_o first_o baron_n of_o that_o house_n create_v earl_n of_o warwick_n and_o duke_n of_o northumberland_n by_o k._n edward_n the_o six_o second_o john_n his_o elder_a survive_a son_n common_o call_v earl_n of_o warwick_n as_o the_o custom_n be_v after_o his_o father_n be_v make_v duke_n who_o die_v without_o issue_n and_o three_o ambrose_n the_o four_o son_n of_o the_o first_o joân_n create_v earl_n of_o warwick_n by_o queen_n elizabeth_n anno_fw-la 1552._o who_o decease_v without_o issue_n also_o so_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o dudley_n earl_n of_o warwick_n from_o who_o this_o robert_n can_v descend_v and_o from_o he_o he_o do_v as_o be_v the_o base_a or_o natural_a son_n of_o robert_n dudley_n earl_n of_o leicester_n the_o five_o son_n of_o the_o say_v john_n dudley_n earl_n of_o warwick_n and_o duke_n of_o northumberland_n second_o this_o sir_n robert_n dudley_n who_o contrive_v the_o manuscript_n do_v not_o style_v himself_o by_o the_o name_n of_o earl_n of_o warwick_n that_o be_v too_o low_a a_o title_n to_o content_v his_o ambition_n for_o look_v on_o himself_o as_o the_o only_a remain_a branch_n of_o this_o house_n of_o the_o dudlies_n he_o take_v upon_o himself_o the_o style_n of_o duke_n of_o northumberland_n and_o be_v common_o call_v so_o by_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n in_o the_o state_n of_o florence_n but_o to_o proceed_v our_o author_n tell_v we_o of_o this_o manuscript_n of_o sir_n robert_n dudlies_n that_o ibid._n it_o be_v a_o rhapsody_n of_o several_a proâects_n for_o increase_v of_o the_o king_n revenue_n and_o somewhat_o in_o prejudice_n of_o proceed_n in_o parliament_n sundry_a copy_n whereof_o be_v disperse_v etc._n etc._n and_o so_o disperse_v that_o there_o be_v few_o or_o none_o who_o be_v inquisitive_a into_o matter_n which_o concern_v the_o public_a that_o get_v not_o â_o copy_n of_o thâse_a papery_n which_o be_v find_v in_o the_o study_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o strafford_n as_o it_o may_v have_v be_v in_o thousânds_n more_o give_v a_o occasion_n to_o e._n h._n a_o obscure_a fellow_n compose_v of_o ignorance_n and_o malice_n to_o publish_v it_o in_o print_n with_o this_o follow_a title_n viz._n strafford_n plât_v discover_v and_o thâ_n parliament_n vindicate_v in_o their_o justice_n execute_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o late_a discovery_n of_o certain_a proposition_n deliver_v to_o his_o majesty_n by_o the_o earl_n of_o strafford_n a_o little_a before_o his_o trial_n with_o this_o inscription_n proposition_n for_o the_o bridle_n of_o parliament_n and_o for_o the_o increase_n of_o his_o majesty_n revenue_n much_o more_o than_o before_o etc._n etc._n and_o so_o much_o for_o the_o harmless_a error_n of_o my_o present_n and_o the_o malicious_a falsehood_n of_o my_o absent_a author_n among_o which_o harmless_a error_n of_o my_o present_n but_o not_o to_o be_v excuse_v in_o any_o author_n i_o reckon_v his_o name_n of_o king_n charles_n to_o be_v the_o uncle_n of_o frederick_n prince_n elector_n palatine_n fol._n 143._o and_o within_o few_o line_n after_o his_o brother-in-law_n as_o indeed_o he_o be_v his_o make_a chalcedon_n to_o be_v a_o city_n in_o greece_n fol._n 151._o whereas_o it_o be_v a_o city_n of_o bythinia_n in_o asia_n minor_fw-la on_o the_o other_o side_n of_o the_o sea_n but_o leave_v these_o i_o proceed_v to_o matter_n of_o more_o moment_n and_o of_o great_a consequence_n fol._n 148._o and_o therefore_o draw_v a_o pedigree_n of_o his_o right_n and_o title_n from_o king_n james_n the_o first_o etc._n etc._n our_o author_n speak_v this_o of_o the_o pedigree_n by_o which_o the_o marquis_n of_o hamilton_n pretend_v a_o right_n and_o title_n to_o the_o crown_n of_o scotland_n a_o title_n which_o have_v so_o many_o flaw_n that_o
second_o he_o buy_v not_o the_o duchy_n of_o gelder_n neither_o but_o possess_v himself_o of_o it_o by_o a_o mix_a title_n of_o arm_n and_o contract_n the_o first_o contract_n make_v between_o charles_n the_o warlike_a duke_n of_o burgundy_n and_o arnold_n of_o egmond_n duke_n of_o gelder_n who_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o great_a succour_n which_o he_o receive_v from_o he_o when_o deprive_v and_o imprison_v by_o his_o own_o ungracious_a son_n pass_v over_o his_o whole_a estate_n to_o he_o for_o a_o little_a money_n but_o this_o alienation_n be_v make_v unprofitable_a by_o the_o death_n of_o charles_n the_o intrusion_n of_o adolph_n the_o son_n of_o arnold_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o charles_n the_o son_n of_o adolph_n this_o emperor_n revive_v the_o claim_n and_o press_v duke_n charles_n so_o hot_o on_o all_o side_n with_o continual_a war_n that_o he_o be_v force_v to_o yield_v it_o to_o he_o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o may_v enjoy_v it_o till_o his_o death_n which_o be_v afterward_o grant_v three_o if_o he_o have_v any_o right_n to_o the_o dukedom_n of_o william_n it_o accrue_v not_o to_o he_o by_o descent_n as_o king_n of_o spain_n but_o as_o a_o âief_n forfeit_v to_o the_o empire_n for_o want_v of_o heir_n male_a in_o the_o house_n of_o sforza_n which_o not_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o french_a who_o pretend_v from_o the_o heir_n general_n of_o the_o galeazzo_n he_o win_v it_o by_o his_o sword_n and_o so_o dispose_v thereof_o to_o his_o son_n and_o successor_n king_n philip_n the_o second_o and_o his_o heir_n by_o another_o right_n than_o that_o of_o conquest_n the_o proceed_n of_o the_o short_a parliament_n and_o the_o survive_a convocation_n have_v be_v so_o full_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o observation_n on_o the_o former_a history_n that_o nothing_o need_v be_v add_v here_o but_o the_o long_a parliament_n which_o begin_v in_o november_n follow_v will_v afford_v we_o some_o new_a matter_n for_o these_o advertisement_n not_o before_o observe_v and_o first_o we_o find_v that_o fol._n 336._o there_o come_v out_o a_o order_n of_o the_o commons_o house_n that_o all_o projector_n and_o unlawful_a monopolist_n that_o have_v or_o have_v ââtely_o any_o benefit_n from_o monopoly_n or_o countenance_v or_o issue_v out_o any_o warrant_n in_o favour_n of_o they_o etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v disable_v to_o sit_v in_o the_o house_n a_o new_a piece_n of_o authority_n which_o the_o commons_o never_o exercise_v before_o and_o which_o they_o have_v no_o right_a to_o now_o but_o that_o they_o know_v they_o be_v at_o this_o time_n in_o such_o a_o condition_n as_o to_o venture_v upon_o any_o new_a encroachment_n without_o control_n for_o ancientlyâ_n and_o legal_o the_o commons_o have_v no_o power_n to_o exclude_v any_o of_o their_o member_n from_o their_o place_n in_o parliament_n either_o under_o colour_n of_o false_a election_n or_o any_o other_o pretence_n whatsoever_o for_o it_o appear_v on_o good_a record_n in_o the_o 28_o year_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n that_o the_o commons_o in_o parliament_n undertake_v the_o examination_n of_o the_o choose_n and_o return_v of_o knight_n of_o the_o shire_n for_o the_o county_n of_o norfolk_n be_v by_o the_o queen_n sharp_o reprehend_v for_o it_o that_o be_v as_o she_o send_v they_o word_n a_o thing_n improper_a for_o they_o to_o deal_v in_o as_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o office_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o lord_n chancellor_n from_o who_o the_o writ_n issue_n and_o aâe_v return_v and_o if_o they_o may_v not_o exclude_v their_o member_n under_o colour_n of_o undue_a election_n and_o false_a return_v much_o less_o authority_n have_v they_o to_o exclude_v any_o of_o they_o for_o act_v by_o virtue_n of_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n or_o do_v any_o thing_n in_o order_n to_o his_o majesty_n service_n for_o if_o this_o power_n be_v once_o allow_v they_o they_o may_v proceed_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o shut_v out_o all_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o privy_a council_n his_o counsel_n learn_v in_o the_o law_n his_o domestic_a servant_n together_o with_o all_o such_o as_o hold_v any_o office_n by_o his_o grant_n and_o favor_n because_o forsooth_o have_v dependence_n on_o the_o king_n they_o can_v not_o be_v true_a unto_o the_o interest_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n and_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o may_v so_o weed_v out_o one_o another_o that_o at_o the_o last_o they_o will_v leave_v none_o to_o sit_v among_o they_o but_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v all_o engage_v to_o drive_v on_o such_o project_n as_o be_v lay_v before_o they_o but_o whereas_o our_o author_n tell_v we_o in_o the_o follow_a word_n that_o it_o be_v order_v also_o that_o mr._n speaker_n shall_v issue_v out_o new_a warrant_n for_o elect_v other_o member_n in_o their_o place_n he_o make_v the_o commons_o guilty_a of_o a_o great_a encroachment_n than_o indeed_o they_o be_v all_o that_o they_o do_v or_o can_v pretend_v to_o in_o this_o case_n be_v to_o give_v order_n to_o the_o speaker_n that_o intimation_n may_v be_v give_v to_o his_o majesty_n of_o the_o place_n vacant_a and_o to_o make_v humble_a suit_n unto_o he_o to_o issue_v out_o new_a writ_n for_o new_a election_n to_o those_o place_n but_o the_o next_o encroachment_n on_o the_o king_n authority_n be_v far_o great_a than_o this_o and_o come_v next_o in_o order_n fol._n 360._o the_o bill_n for_o the_o trienial_a parliament_n have_v pâssed_v both_o house_n be_v confirm_v with_o the_o king_n royal_a assent_n febr._n 16._o and_o then_o also_o he_o pass_v the_o bill_n of_o subsidy_n fol._n 361._o the_o subsidy_n here_o mention_v be_v intend_v for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o northern_a county_n oppress_v at_o once_o with_o two_o great_a army_n who_o not_o only_o live_v upon_o free_a quarter_n but_o raise_v divers_a sum_n of_o money_n also_o for_o their_o present_a necessity_n the_o one_o of_o they_o a_o army_n of_o english_a raise_v by_o the_o king_n to_o right_v himself_o upon_o the_o scot_n the_o other_o be_v a_o army_n of_o scot_n who_o invade_v the_o kingdom_n under_o colour_n of_o obtain_v from_o the_o king_n what_o they_o have_v no_o right_n to_o so_o that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o to_o have_v a_o penny_n of_o that_o money_n and_o yet_o the_o commons_o will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o pass_v the_o one_o till_o he_o have_v before_o hand_n pass_v the_o other_o which_o the_o king_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o his_o poor_a subject_n be_v content_a to_o do_v and_o thereby_o put_v the_o power_n of_o call_v parliament_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o sheriff_n and_o constable_n in_o case_n he_o either_o will_v not_o or_o shall_v not_o do_v it_o at_o each_o three_o year_n end_n but_o the_o nexâ_n encroachment_n on_o the_o power_n and_o prerogative_n royal_a be_v worse_o than_o this_o there_o be_v a_o way_n leave_v for_o the_o king_n to_o reserve_v that_o power_n by_o the_o timely_a call_n of_o a_o parliament_n and_o the_o dissolve_v of_o it_o too_o if_o call_v within_o a_o short_a time_n than_o that_o act_n have_v limit_v but_o for_o the_o next_o sore_n which_o be_v his_o pass_v of_o the_o bill_n of_o tonnage_n and_o poundage_n there_o be_v no_o plaster_n to_o be_v find_v the_o king_n be_v fore_v remember_v that_o the_o commons_o have_v a_o army_n of_o scot_n at_o their_o devotion_n to_o pass_v away_o all_o his_o right_n unto_o it_o before_o he_o can_v obtain_v it_o but_o for_o three_o month_n only_o as_o be_v say_v before_o in_o which_o bill_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o as_o they_o deprive_v the_o king_n of_o his_o right_n to_o tonnage_n and_o poundage_n so_o they_o begin_v then_o to_o strike_v at_o the_o bishop_n right_n to_o their_o vote_n in_o parliament_n for_o whereas_o general_o in_o all_o former_a act_n the_o lord_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a be_v distinct_o name_v in_o this_o that_o distinction_n be_v leave_v out_o and_o the_o bill_n draw_v up_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lordâ_n and_o commons_o which_o be_v dispute_v by_o the_o bishop_n as_o well_o foreseeing_a what_o the_o commons_o intend_v by_o it_o be_v notwithstanding_o carry_v for_o the_o commons_o by_o the_o temporal_a lord_n who_o thereby_o make_v a_o way_n for_o their_o own_o exclusion_n when_o the_o commons_o be_v grow_v as_o much_o too_o strong_a for_o they_o as_o they_o be_v for_o the_o bishop_n the_o secular_a lord_n know_v well_o that_o the_o lord_n spiritual_a be_v to_o have_v the_o precedence_n and_o therefore_o give_v they_o leave_v to_o go_v first_o out_o of_o the_o house_n that_o they_o themselves_o may_v follow_v after_o as_o they_o ought_v to_o do_v proceed_v we_o next_o to_o the_o business_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o strafford_n aâ_n who_o trial_n our_o author_n tell_v we_o that_o fol._n 376._o the_o earl_n of_o arundel_n be_v make_v lord_n high_a steward_n and_o the_o earl_n of_o
house_n as_o be_v like_a to_o make_v the_o worst_a use_n of_o it_o and_o the_o more_o to_o ingratiate_v himself_o with_o the_o prevalent_a party_n he_o aggravate_v the_o suppose_a offence_n to_o the_o very_a utmost_a and_o the_o suppose_a offence_n be_v this_o that_o the_o bishop_n have_v be_v frequent_o revile_v pursue_v and_o violent_o keep_v from_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n protest_v by_o a_o write_n under_o their_o hand_n that_o they_o dare_v not_o sit_v or_o vote_n in_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n until_o his_o majesty_n shall_v secure_v they_o from_o all_o affront_n indignity_n and_o danger_n and_o therefore_o that_o all_o law_n order_n vote_n resolution_n and_o determination_n shall_v be_v repute_v null_n and_o of_o none_o effect_n which_o in_o their_o absence_n have_v pass_v or_o shall_v pass_v in_o the_o say_v most_o honourable_a house_n during_o the_o time_n of_o their_o force_a and_o violent_a absence_n which_o petition_n and_o protestation_n be_v ãâ¦ã_z record_n of_o parliament_n be_v think_v to_o be_v a_o good_a ãâã_d of_o their_o place_n and_o right_a suffrage_n in_o the_o house_n of_o ãâã_d âââwithstanding_n the_o subsequent_a act_n of_o parliament_n ãâã_d deprive_v they_o of_o it_o but_o how_o that_o protestation_n can_v amount_v to_o treason_n in_o the_o new_a construction_n of_o the_o word_n be_v so_o impossible_a to_o be_v prove_v that_o they_o who_o ãâã_d so_o vote_v it_o have_v serve_v their_o turn_n by_o the_o imprisonment_n of_o the_o bishop_n for_o deprive_v they_o of_o their_o place_n and_o vote_n in_o parliament_n and_o divest_v the_o king_n of_o his_o power_n and_o prerogative_n in_o press_a soldier_n for_o his_o war_n at_o once_o release_v they_o of_o the_o impâiâonment_n and_o accusation_n under_o which_o they_o suffer_v add_v hereunto_o that_o when_o the_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o be_v seize_v upon_o and_o keep_v in_o custody_n by_o the_o officer_n of_o the_o army_n under_o the_o command_n of_o sir_n thomas_n fairfax_n on_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o day_n of_o december_n 1647._o they_o make_v a_o protestation_n to_o this_o effect_n viz._n that_o all_o act_n and_o ordinance_n vote_n and_o proceed_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o make_v after_o the_o say_v six_o and_o seven_o of_o december_n or_o after_o to_o be_v make_v during_o their_o restraint_n and_o forcible_a seclusion_n from_o the_o house_n and_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o army_n force_n upon_o it_o shall_v be_v no_o way_n obligatory_a but_o void_a and_o null_a to_o all_o intent_n and_o purpose_n whatsoever_o which_o protestation_n though_o it_o touch_v the_o officer_n of_o the_o army_n to_o the_o very_a quick_a yet_o have_v they_o so_o much_o modesty_n as_o not_o to_o count_v it_o for_o high_a treason_n and_o when_o the_o member_n which_o be_v leave_v remain_v in_o that_o house_n for_o the_o present_a turn_n have_v scan_v over_o every_o particular_a of_o that_o protestation_n they_o only_o venture_v so_o far_o as_o to_o vote_n it_o to_o be_v scandalous_a and_o seditious_a as_o tend_v to_o destroy_v the_o present_a visible_a government_n and_o that_o all_o that_o have_v a_o hand_n in_o it_o be_v unworthy_a of_o trust_n for_o which_o consult_v mercurius_n pragmaticus_n numb_a 38._o by_o which_o we_o see_v that_o which_o be_v count_v treason_n in_o the_o bishop_n be_v not_o conceive_v to_o be_v such_o in_o these_o member_n of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o no_o more_o then_o far_o worse_a crime_n than_o those_o which_o ãâ¦ã_z for_o treason_n in_o the_o earl_n of_o strafford_n can_v ãâã_d to_o be_v treason_n in_o the_o case_n of_o the_o five_o ãâ¦ã_z lord_n of_o kimbolton_n so_o true_a be_v that_o which_o horace_n ãâ¦ã_z book_n de_fw-fr arte_fw-la poetica_fw-la viz._n coecilio_n plautoqâe_v dabit_fw-la ãâ¦ã_z virgilio_n varioque_fw-la which_o can_v be_v english_v more_o significant_o then_o by_o this_o old_a proverb_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o ãâã_d better_o steal_v a_o horse_n than_o other_o look_v on_o fol._n 478_o the_o city_n take_v heart_n and_o hand_n with_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o summon_v a_o common_a council_n where_o they_o debate_v their_o jealousy_n and_o fear_n the_o constitution_n of_o the_o common_a council_n of_o the_o city_n be_v of_o great_a concernment_n at_o this_o time_n and_o therefore_o it_o behove_v the_o commons_o in_o order_n to_o the_o prosecution_n of_o their_o design_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v new_o mould_v most_o of_o the_o old_a one_o lay_v aside_o and_o creature_n of_o their_o own_o elect_a into_o their_o place_n and_o by_o their_o emissary_n and_o agent_n they_o prevail_v so_o far_o that_o on_o s._n thomas_n day_n when_o the_o common-councell-man_n be_v to_o be_v choose_v for_o every_o ward_n in_o stead_n of_o those_o grave_n sober_a and_o substantial_a man_n which_o before_o they_o have_v they_o choose_v a_o company_n of_o factious_a and_o indigent_a person_n know_v only_o by_o their_o disaffection_n to_o monarchical_a and_o episcopal_a government_n and_o whereas_o by_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o city_n the_o common-councell-man_n then_o elect_v be_v not_o admit_v unto_o council_n till_o the_o monday_n after_o twelfthday_n when_o their_o election_n be_v return_v and_o enroll_v by_o the_o town-clerk_n these_o man_n well_o know_v how_o much_o the_o design_n of_o the_o commons_o do_v depend_v upon_o they_o will_v not_o stay_v so_o long_o and_o therefore_o when_o the_o king_n have_v appoint_v a_o common-council_n to_o be_v call_v on_o the_o last_o day_n of_o december_n for_o the_o prevention_n of_o such_o tumult_n as_o have_v happen_v a_o few_o day_n before_o they_o thrust_v themselves_o in_o among_o the_o rest_n the_o like_a they_o do_v when_o the_o king_n give_v a_o meeting_n to_o a_o common_a council_n appoint_v by_o he_o on_o the_o five_o of_o january_n wherein_o he_o acquaint_v they_o with_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o proceed_n against_o the_o five_o impeach_v member_n desire_v that_o they_o may_v not_o have_v any_o retreat_n or_o harbour_v within_o the_o city_n at_o what_o time_n fowke_n one_o of_o these_o common-council_n man_n as_o be_v the_o bell-wether_n to_o the_o rest_n make_v a_o saucy_a and_o insolent_a speech_n unto_o the_o king_n concern_v fear_n and_o âââlousies_n touch_v the_o member_n accuse_v the_o privilege_n of_o parliament_n and_o that_o they_o may_v not_o be_v try_v but_o in_o a_o parliamentary_a way_n to_o which_o though_o the_o king_n return_v a_o very_a mild_a and_o gracious_a answer_n yet_o the_o rabble_n be_v once_o inflame_v by_o their_o seditious_a orator_n will_v not_o so_o be_v satisfy_v but_o at_o his_o come_n out_o of_o the_o hall_n and_o as_o he_o pass_v in_o his_o coach_n through_o the_o street_n there_o be_v nothing_o echo_v in_o his_o ear_n but_o privilege_n of_o parliament_n privilege_n of_o parliament_n by_o the_o help_n and_o vote_n of_o these_o man_n also_o be_v that_o petition_n frame_v and_o deliver_v to_o the_o king_n on_o the_o morrow_n after_o which_o follow_v immediate_o in_o our_o author_n and_o by_o the_o help_n of_o these_o man_n do_v they_o extort_v the_o militia_n of_o the_o city_n out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o mayor_n and_o alderman_n and_o put_v it_o into_o the_o power_n of_o inferior_a person_n such_o as_o the_o faction_n in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o may_v best_o confide_v in_o and_o for_o their_o jealousy_n and_o fear_n which_o be_v to_o be_v debate_v in_o the_o common_a council_n they_o be_v of_o no_o less_o nature_n than_o the_o blow_v up_o of_o the_o thames_n to_o drown_v the_o city_n or_o the_o beat_n it_o down_o about_o their_o ear_n by_o col._n lunsford_n from_o the_o tower_n or_o the_o sack_n it_o by_o the_o king_n and_o the_o cavalier_n horrible_a gullery_n but_o such_o as_o be_v general_o disperse_v and_o no_o less_o general_o believe_v by_o fool_n woman_n and_o child_n fol._n 482._o upon_o information_n of_o troop_n of_o horse_n to_o be_v gather_v by_o the_o lord_n digby_n and_o colonel_n lunsford_n at_o kingston_n where_o the_o county_n magazine_n be_v lodge_v they_o order_n that_o the_o sheriff_n of_o the_o several_a county_n etc._n etc._n shall_v suppress_v all_o unlawful_a assembly_n etc._n etc._n most_o true_a it_o be_v that_o such_o a_o order_n be_v make_v by_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o the_o better_a to_o amaze_v the_o people_n and_o keep_v they_o in_o continual_a fear_n and_o jealousy_n of_o the_o king_n proceed_n but_o nothing_o be_v more_o false_a then_o that_o any_o troop_n of_o horse_n have_v be_v raise_v by_o the_o lord_n digby_n or_o colonel_n lunsford_n or_o that_o they_o have_v any_o such_o design_n as_o to_o seize_v the_o magazine_n at_o kingston_n which_o they_o may_v easy_o have_v do_v have_v they_o be_v so_o mind_v before_o it_o can_v have_v be_v prevent_v but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o the_o king_n not_o know_v what_o the_o london_n tumult_n may_v
issue_v out_o of_o the_o chancery_n which_o they_o still_o keep_v open_a but_o when_o it_o come_v to_o be_v debate_v in_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o it_o be_v allege_v by_o some_o sober_a man_n that_o the_o counterfeit_n of_o the_o great_a seal_n be_v make_v high_a treason_n by_o the_o statute_n of_o the_o 25._o of_o king_n edward_n the_o three_o to_o which_o it_o be_v very_o learned_o reply_v by_o sergeant_n wilde_n that_o they_o intend_v not_o to_o counterfeit_v the_o old_a great_a seal_n but_o to_o make_v a_o new_a one_o on_o which_o ridiculous_a resolution_n of_o this_o learned_a sergeant_n who_o great_a ruff_n have_v as_o much_o law_n in_o it_o as_o his_o little_a head_n the_o design_n go_v forward_o but_o not_o with_o any_o such_o alteration_n in_o the_o impress_n as_o our_o author_n speak_v of_o the_o impress_n of_o this_o new_a seal_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o in_o the_o old_a the_o feather_n or_o prince_n arm_n be_v only_o add_v in_o a_o void_a place_n of_o it_o to_o show_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o that_o so_o their_o follower_n may_v distinguish_v between_o such_o command_v as_o come_v from_o his_o majesty_n and_o such_o as_o come_v immediate_o from_o themselves_o in_o his_o majesty_n name_n but_o whereas_o our_o author_n speak_v in_o some_o word_n foregoing_a of_o a_o legislative_a power_n which_o he_o conceive_v to_o be_v in_o the_o parliament_n he_o show_v himself_o therein_o to_o be_v no_o better_o a_o lawyer_n then_o m._n serâcant_a the_o legislative_a power_n be_v only_o in_o the_o king_n himself_o though_o legal_o he_o be_v restrain_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o commons_o assemble_v in_o parliament_n fol._n 623._o lin_v lâ_n ãâ¦ã_z the_o one_o a_o cripple_n the_o other_o somewhat_o like_o a_o lunatic_n our_o author_n speak_v this_o of_o the_o child_n of_o m._n john_n hambden_n one_o of_o the_o five_o member_n so_o much_o talk_v of_o the_o principal_a member_n of_o the_o five_o as_o our_o author_n call_v he_o but_o on_o what_o ground_n he_o speak_v it_o as_o i_o do_v not_o know_v âo_o neither_o be_v it_o worth_a enquiry_n and_o though_o i_o may_v leave_v the_o child_n of_o m._n hambden_n under_o this_o reproach_n as_o a_o undoubted_a sign_n of_o god_n judgement_n on_o he_o for_o be_v a_o principal_a incendiary_n in_o that_o fire_n which_o for_o a_o long_a time_n consume_v the_o kingdom_n yet_o so_o far_o do_v i_o prefer_v truth_n before_o private_a interest_n that_o i_o shall_v do_v he_o that_o right_n in_o his_o posterity_n which_o our_o author_n either_o out_o of_o ignorance_n easiness_n of_o belief_n or_o malice_n have_v be_v please_v to_o deny_v he_o and_o therefore_o the_o reader_n be_v to_o know_v that_o the_o survive_a child_n of_o that_o gentleman_n be_v not_o only_o of_o a_o erect_a and_o comely_a stature_n but_o that_o they_o have_v in_o they_o all_o the_o ability_n of_o wit_n and_o judgement_n wherewith_o their_o father_n be_v endue_v though_o govern_v with_o a_o more_o moderate_a spirit_n and_o not_o so_o troublesome_o active_a in_o affair_n of_o state_n fol._n 626._o the_o five_o and_o twenty_o of_o august_n the_o earl_n of_o bedford_n and_o holland_n go_v from_o london_n towards_o oxford_n etc._n etc._n that_o the_o say_v two_o earl_n come_v to_o oxford_n to_o tender_v their_o submission_n to_o the_o king_n be_v a_o truth_n undoubted_a soon_o than_o our_o author_n speak_v of_o but_o that_o they_o be_v receive_v with_o favour_n and_o forgiveness_n may_v be_v very_o well_o question_v not_o as_o in_o reference_n to_o forgiveness_n which_o consider_v the_o king_n good_a nature_n may_v be_v âasily_o grant_v but_o in_o relation_n unto_o favour_n a_o point_n wherein_o our_o author_n have_v confute_v himself_o tell_v we_o fol._n 639._o of_o the_o earl_n of_o holland_n that_o he_o have_v but_o slender_a reception_n though_o he_o put_v himself_o in_o a_o posture_n of_o arm_n with_o the_o king_n in_o the_o field_n and_o ãâã_d this_o slender_a reception_n he_o complain_v in_o a_o letter_n to_o the_o loâd_a jermân_n after_o his_o departure_n wherein_o he_o do_v relate_v that_o the_o king_n do_v not_o show_v so_o much_o countenance_n to_o he_o as_o he_o have_v see_v hâm_n do_v at_o the_o same_o time_n to_o some_o câmmon_a soldier_n who_o have_v flee_v from_o the_o enemy_n to_o come_v to_o he_o there_o come_v to_o oxford_n also_o at_o or_o about_o the_o same_o time_n the_o earl_n of_o clare_n and_o find_v the_o like_a cold_a entertainment_n it_o be_v conceive_v and_o by_o some_o report_v that_o if_o the_o king_n have_v show_v good_a countenance_n to_o these_o three_o lord_n most_o of_o the_o rest_n will_v have_v leave_v the_o parliament_n and_o repair_v unto_o he_o but_o the_o king_n consider_v well_o enough_o that_o not_o so_o much_o the_o sense_n of_o their_o duty_n as_o his_o success_n in_o the_o west_n have_v bring_v they_o thither_o and_o that_o if_o five_o or_o six_o only_a of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v leave_v in_o westminster_n those_o five_o or_o six_o only_o will_v be_v think_v sufficient_a to_o constitute_v a_o house_n of_o peer_n as_o many_o time_n there_o be_v no_o more_o present_a foâ_n the_o pass_v of_o any_o ordinance_n which_o the_o commons_o shall_v be_v please_v to_o commend_v unto_o they_o fol._n 630._o and_o now_o be_v the_o king_n draw_v down_o before_o the_o town_n attend_v by_o prince_n charles_n and_o the_o duke_n of_o york_n prince_n rupert_n and_o general_n ruthen_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o king_n sit_v down_o before_o gloucester_n and_o lay_v a_o formal_a siege_n unto_o it_o there_o be_v give_v this_o reason_n viz._n that_o by_o the_o take_n of_o this_o town_n all_o wales_n will_v be_v preserve_v in_o the_o king_n obedience_n entire_o unite_v unto_o eâgland_n and_o free_a passage_n give_v on_o all_o occasion_n and_o distress_n to_o assist_v each_o other_o and_o so_o far_o the_o design_n be_v not_o to_o be_v discommend_v but_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o king_n unhappy_a sit_v down_o before_o that_o town_n lose_v he_o the_o opportunity_n of_o march_v direct_o towards_o london_n and_o ââattering_v the_o faction_n in_o the_o parliament_n both_o which_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o affrightment_n which_o fall_v upon_o they_o by_o the_o take_n of_o bristol_n and_o other_o place_n in_o the_o west_n be_v ready_a to_o give_v up_o themselves_o even_o to_o desperation_n and_o so_o much_o be_v affirm_v by_o the_o earl_n of_o holland_n when_o he_o be_v at_o oxford_n assure_v sir_n john_n heydon_n lieutenant_n of_o the_o ordinance_n from_o who_o mouth_n i_o have_v it_o that_o the_o prevail_a member_n of_o both_o house_n be_v upon_o the_o point_n of_o truss_v up_o of_o bag_n and_o baggage_n but_o that_o they_o hope_v as_o some_o of_o they_o tell_v he_o that_o n._n n._n one_o of_o great_a nearness_n to_o the_o king_n a_o especial_a confident_a of_o they_o will_v prevail_v with_o he_o at_o the_o last_o to_o lay_v siege_n to_o gloucester_n and_o not_o to_o leave_v that_o town_n at_o his_o back_n to_o infest_v the_o country_n fol._n 633._o two_o spy_n send_v out_o long_o since_o return_v from_o warwick_n give_v they_o news_n of_o the_o march_n of_o the_o earl_n of_o essex_n but_o be_v not_o assure_v he_o lodging_n then_o ânder_a a_o cloud_n of_o disgrace_n be_v beat_v out_o of_o the_o west_n but_o certain_o the_o earl_n of_o essex_n can_v not_o be_v under_o a_o cloud_n at_o that_o time_n for_o be_v beat_v out_o of_o the_o west_n his_o prepare_v to_o raise_v the_o siege_n of_o gloucester_n happen_v in_o the_o end_n of_o august_n anno_fw-la 1643._o and_o his_o be_v beat_v in_o the_o west_n not_o happen_v till_o the_o beginning_n of_o september_n anno_fw-la 1644._o but_o we_o must_v think_v the_o house_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o prophecy_n and_o frown_v upon_o the_o man_n beforehand_o for_o that_o which_o be_v to_o happen_v to_o he_o a_o twelve_o month_n after_o nor_o be_v it_o any_o fault_n of_o his_o that_o bristol_n exeter_n and_o so_o many_o place_n of_o importance_n have_v be_v lose_v in_o the_o west_n he_o have_v no_o force_n able_a to_o act_v any_o thing_n against_o the_o king_n till_o the_o pulpit-man_n in_o london_n preach_v he_o up_o a_o aâmy_n for_o the_o relief_n of_o gloucester_n a_o army_n which_o come_v time_n enough_o to_o do_v the_o work_n the_o siege_n be_v very_o slack_o follow_v and_o have_v do_v the_o work_n be_v as_o desirous_a to_o return_v back_o to_o their_o own_o house_n but_o see_v what_o happen_v by_o the_o way_n fol._n 636._o from_o cirencester_n he_o march_v to_o chilleton_n the_o cavalier_n face_v they_o on_o mavarn_v hill_n if_o so_o than_o first_o the_o earl_n of_o essex_n must_v be_v the_o janus_n of_o this_o age_n
ordinary_a temper_n and_o so_o much_o be_v the_o king_n startle_v when_o he_o hear_v of_o the_o give_v up_o of_o that_o city_n with_o the_o fort_n and_o castle_n and_o that_o too_o in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n that_o he_o post_v away_o a_o messenger_n to_o the_o lord_n at_o oxford_n to_o displace_v col._n legg_n a_o well_o know_v creature_n of_o prince_n rupert_n from_o the_o government_n of_o that_o city_n and_o garrison_n and_o to_o put_v it_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o sir_n thomas_n glenham_n which_o be_v according_o do_v and_o do_v unto_o the_o great_a contentment_n of_o all_o the_o king_n party_n except_o that_o prince_n and_o his_o dependent_n but_o legg_n be_v sweeten_v not_o long_o after_o by_o be_v make_v one_o of_o the_o groom_n of_o his_o majesty_n bedchamber_n a_o place_n of_o less_o command_n but_o of_o great_a trust_n fol._n 891._o and_o now_o the_o parliament_n consider_v of_o a_o term_n or_o titleâ_n to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o commissioner_n entrust_v with_o their_o great_a seal_n and_o be_v to_o be_v call_v conservator_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n of_o england_n not_o so_o with_o reference_n either_o to_o the_o time_n or_o the_o thing_n itself_o for_o first_o the_o commissioner_n of_o the_o great_a seal_n be_v never_o call_v the_o conservator_n for_n the_o commonwealth_n of_o england_n and_o second_o if_o they_o ever_o have_v be_v call_v so_o it_o be_v not_o now_o that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o the_o king_n seal_n be_v break_v in_o the_o house_n of_o peer_n which_o be_v not_o long_o after_o midsummer_n in_o the_o year_n 1646._o but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o on_o the_o 30_o of_o january_n 1648._o being_n the_o day_n of_o the_o king_n most_o deplorable_a death_n the_o commons_o cause_v a_o act_n or_o order_n to_o be_v print_v in_o which_o it_o be_v declare_v that_o from_o thenceforth_o in_o stead_n of_o the_o king_n name_n in_o all_o commission_n decree_n process_n and_o indictment_n the_o ââtle_a of_o custodes_fw-la libertatis_fw-la angliae_fw-la or_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o england_n as_o it_o be_v afterward_o english_v when_o all_o legal_a instrument_n be_v order_v to_o be_v make_v up_o in_o the_o english-tongue_n shall_v be_v always_o use_v but_o who_o these_o keeper_n of_o the_o liberty_n be_v be_v a_o thing_n much_o question_v some_o think_v the_o commissioner_n for_o the_o great_a seal_n be_v intend_v by_o it_o who_o our_o author_n by_o a_o mistake_n of_o the_o title_n call_v here_o the_o conservator_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n other_o conceive_v that_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o council_n of_o state_n but_o neither_o right_o for_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o such_o man_n to_o who_o this_o title_n be_v appliable_a in_o one_o sense_n or_o other_o it_o be_v only_o a_o second_o notion_n like_o genus_fw-la and_o species_n in_o the_o school_n a_o new_a devise_v term_n of_o state-craft_n to_o express_v that_o trust_n which_o never_o be_v invest_v in_o the_o person_n of_o any_o man_n either_o more_o or_o few_o fol._n 892._o âo_o then_o the_o elder_a son_n and_o the_o young_a daughter_n be_v with_o the_o quâân_n in_o france_n the_o two_o duke_n of_o york_n and_o gloucester_n with_o the_o princess_n elizabeth_n at_o st._n james_n be_v the_o prince_n in_o the_o weât_n with_o his_o army_n â_o this_o be_v more_o strange_a than_o all_o the_o rest_n that_o the_o king_n elder_a son_n shall_v be_v with_o his_o mother_n in_o france_n and_o yet_o that_o the_o prince_n at_o the_o same_o time_n shall_v be_v with_o his_o army_n in_o the_o west_n of_o england_n i_o always_o think_v till_o i_o see_v so_o good_a authority_n to_o the_o contrary_a that_o the_o prince_n and_o the_o king_n elder_a son_n have_v be_v but_o one_o person_n but_o find_v it_o otherwise_o resolve_v i_o will_v fain_o know_v which_o of_o the_o king_n sonâ_n be_v the_o prince_n if_o the_o elder_a be_v not_o it_o can_v be_v the_o second_o or_o three_o for_o they_o be_v here_o call_v both_o only_a by_o the_o name_n of_o duke_n and_o make_v distinct_a person_n from_o the_o prince_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v needs_o believe_v that_o the_o king_n elder_a son_n christen_v by_o the_o name_n of_o charls-iames_n who_o die_v at_o greânwich_n almost_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v bear_v anno_fw-la 1629._o be_v raise_v up_o from_o the_o dead_a by_o some_o honest_a french_a conjurer_n to_o keep_v company_n with_o the_o young_a princess_n henrietta_n who_o may_v converse_v with_o hâm_n as_o a_o playfellow_n without_o any_o terror_n as_o not_o be_v able_a to_o distinguish_v he_o from_o a_o baby_n of_o clout_n that_o he_o and_o all_o that_o do_v adhere_v unto_o he_o shall_v be_v safe_a in_o their_o person_n honour_n andââonsciences_n in_o the_o scotish_n army_n and_o that_o they_o will_v real_o and_o effectual_o join_v with_o he_o and_o with_o such_o as_o will_v come_v in_o unto_o he_o and_o join_v with_o they_o for_o his_o preservation_n and_o shall_v employ_v their_o army_n and_o force_n to_o assist_v he_o to_o his_o kingdom_n in_o the_o recovery_n of_o his_o âust_z right_n but_o on_o the_o contrary_a these_o juggle_n and_o perfidious_a ãâã_d declare_v in_o a_o letter_n to_o their_o commissioner_n at_o london_n by_o they_o to_o be_v communicate_v to_o the_o house_n of_o parliament_n that_o there_o have_v be_v no_o treaty_n nor_o apitulation_n betwixt_o his_o mââesty_n and_o they_o nor_o any_o in_o their_o name_n etc._n etc._n on_o the_o receipt_n of_o which_o letter_n the_o house_n order_v he_o to_o be_v send_v to_o warwick_n castle_n but_o lesâly_n who_o have_v be_v use_v to_o buy_v and_o sell_v in_o the_o time_n of_o his_o pedlary_n be_v loath_a to_o lose_v the_o benefit_n of_o so_o rich_a a_o commodity_n and_o thereupon_o remove_v he_o in_o such_o post-haste_n that_o on_o the_o eight_o of_o may_v we_o find_v he_o at_o southwel_n and_o at_o newcastle_n on_o the_o ten_o place_n above_o a_o hundred_o mile_n distant_a from_o one_o another_o and_o he_o resolve_v beforehand_o how_o to_o dispose_v of_o he_o when_o he_o have_v he_o there_o âo_o scotland_n he_o never_o mean_v to_o carry_v he_o though_o some_o hope_n be_v give_v of_o it_o at_o the_o first_o for_o not_o only_a lesly_n himself_o but_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o covenanter_n in_o the_o army_n be_v loath_a to_o admit_v of_o any_o competitor_n in_o the_o government_n of_o that_o kingdom_n which_o they_o have_v ingross_v whoây_o to_o themselves_o but_o the_o ãâã_d in_o a_o assembly_n of_o they_o declare_v express_o against_o his_o come_n to_o live_v among_o they_o as_o appear_v fol_n ãâã_d so_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n leave_v to_o dispose_v of_o his_o person_n but_o to_o âell_v he_o to_o the_o house_n of_o parliament_n though_o at_o the_o first_o they_o make_v ãâã_d of_o it_o and_o will_v be_v think_v to_o stand_v upon_o term_n or_o honour_n the_o earl_n of_o lowdon_n who_o love_v to_o hear_v himself_o speak_v more_o âhen_o âny_a man_n live_v in_o some_o speâches_n make_v beâore_a âhe_n house_n protest_v strong_o against_o the_o delivery_n of_o their_o king_n person_n into_o their_o power_n ãâã_d what_o in_o ãâã_d ââamy_n will_v lie_v upon_o they_o and_o the_o whole_a nation_n âf_a ãâã_d âhould_v to_o ãâã_d but_o this_o be_v but_o a_o coây_n of_o their_o countenance_n only_o ãâã_d ââvice_n to_o raise_v the_o marâeâ_n and_o make_v be_v âuch_o money_n ãâ¦ã_z as_o they_o can_v at_o last_o they_o come_v to_o this_o agreement_n that_o for_o the_o sum_n of_o two_o hundred_o thousand_o pound_n they_o shall_v deliver_v he_o to_o such_o commissioner_n as_o the_o house_n shall_v authorize_v to_o receive_v he_o of_o they_o which_o be_v do_v according_o for_o fol._n 939._o the_o commissioner_n for_o receive_v the_o person_n of_o the_o king_n come_v to_o newcastle_n june_n 22._o etc._n etc._n not_o on_o the_o 22_o of_o june_n i_o be_o sure_a of_o that_o the_o commodity_n to_o be_v buy_v and_o sell_v be_v of_o great_a value_n and_o the_o scot_n too_o cunning_a to_o part_v with_o it_o till_o they_o have_v raise_v the_o price_n of_o it_o as_o high_a as_o they_o can_v the_o drive_v of_o this_o bargain_n take_v up_o all_o the_o time_n betwixt_o the_o king_n be_v carry_v to_o newcastle_n and_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o winter_n than_o next_o follow_v so_o that_o the_o king_n may_v be_v deliver_v to_o these_o commissioner_n that_o be_v to_o say_v from_o prison_n to_o prison_n on_o the_o 22_o day_n of_o january_n but_o of_o june_n he_o can_v not_o and_o here_o it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o consider_v what_o loss_n or_o benefit_n redound_v to_o those_o merchant_n which_o trade_v in_o the_o buy_n and_o sell_v of_o this_o precious_a commodity_n and_o first_o the_o scot_n not_o long_o before_o their_o break_n out_o
be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o it_o and_o for_o the_o proof_n thereof_o he_o read_v the_o article_n out_o of_o a_o book_n which_o lie_v before_o he_o begin_v thus_o non_fw-la licet_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la quicquam_fw-la instituere_fw-la quod_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la scripto_fw-la adversetur_fw-la etc._n etc._n to_o which_o the_o resâondent_fw-la ready_o answer_v that_o he_o perceive_v by_o the_o bigness_n of_o the_o book_n which_o lie_v on_o the_o doctor_n cushion_n that_o he_o have_v read_v that_o article_n out_o of_o the_o harmony_n of_o confession_n publish_v at_o geneva_n anno_fw-la 1612._o which_o therein_o follow_v the_o edition_n of_o the_o article_n in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n edward_n the_o six_o anno_fw-la 1552._o in_o which_o that_o sentence_n be_v not_o find_v but_o that_o it_o be_v otherwise_o in_o the_o article_n agree_v on_o in_o the_o convocation_n anno_fw-la 156â_n to_o which_o most_o of_o we_o have_v subscribe_v in_o our_o several_a place_n but_o the_o doctor_n still_o persist_v upon_o that_o point_n and_o the_o respondent_fw-la see_v some_o unsatisfiednesse_n in_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o auditory_a he_o call_v on_o one_o m._n westly_n who_o former_o have_v be_v his_o chamber-fellow_n in_o magdalenâ_n college_n to_o step_v to_o the_o next_o bookseller_n shop_n for_o a_o book_n of_o article_n which_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o doctor_n he_o declare_v himself_o very_o willing_a to_o decline_v any_o further_a prosecution_n of_o tâat_a particular_a and_o to_o go_v on_o direct_o to_o the_o disputation_n but_o the_o respondent_fw-la be_v resolve_v to_o proceed_v no_o further_o usque_fw-la dum_fw-la liberaverit_fw-la animam_fw-la svam_fw-la ab_fw-la ist_fw-mi a_o calumnia_fw-la as_o his_o own_o word_n be_v till_o he_o have_v free_v himself_o from_o that_o odious_a calumny_n but_o it_o be_v not_o long_o before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o book_n have_v put_v a_o end_n to_o that_o controversy_n out_o of_o which_o the_o respondent_fw-la read_v the_o article_n in_o the_o english_a tongue_n in_o his_o verbis_fw-la viz._n the_o church_n have_v power_n to_o decree_v rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o authority_n in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n which_o do_v he_o deliver_v the_o book_n to_o one_o of_o the_o stander_n by_o who_o desire_v it_o of_o he_o the_o book_n pass_v from_o one_o hand_n to_o another_o till_o all_o man_n be_v satisfy_v and_o at_o this_o point_n of_o time_n it_o be_v that_o the_o queen_n almoner_n leave_v the_o school_n profess_v afterward_o that_o he_o can_v see_v no_o hope_n of_o a_o fair_a disputation_n from_o so_o foul_a a_o beginning_n and_o not_o as_o be_v tire_v with_o the_o tedious_a preface_n of_o the_o respondent_fw-la before_o the_o disputation_n begin_v which_o whether_o it_o be_v tedious_a or_o impertinent_a or_o not_o may_v perhaps_o be_v see_v hereafter_o upon_o this_o occasion_n but_o to_o proceed_v upon_o the_o break_n of_o this_o blow_n the_o doctor_n fall_v on_o roundly_o to_o his_o argumentation_n and_o in_o the_o heat_n thereof_o insist_v upon_o those_o extravagant_a expression_n without_o any_o such_o qualification_n of_o they_o as_o be_v find_v in_o the_o paper_n which_o make_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o information_n which_o be_v now_o before_o we_o and_o for_o which_o if_o he_o receive_v any_o check_n from_o the_o king_n at_o woodstock_n it_o be_v no_o more_o than_o what_o he_o have_v receive_v at_o the_o same_o place_n but_o two_o year_n before_o as_o afore_o be_v say_v which_o notwithstanding_o the_o book_n of_o article_n be_v print_v the_o next_o year_n at_o oxon_n in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n according_a to_o the_o copy_n in_o the_o say_a harmony_n of_o confession_n or_o to_o a_o corrupt_a edition_n of_o they_o anno_fw-la 1571._o in_o which_o that_o clause_n have_v be_v omit_v to_o the_o great_a animation_n of_o the_o puritan_n party_n who_o then_o begin_v afresh_o to_o call_v in_o question_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o point_v aforesaid_a for_o which_o as_o d._n prideaux_n by_o who_o encouragement_n it_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v do_v receive_v a_o three_o check_n from_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n then_o chancellor_n of_o that_o university_n so_o the_o printer_n be_v constrain_v to_o re-print_n the_o book_n or_o that_o part_n of_o it_o at_o the_o least_o according_a to_o the_o genuine_a and_o ancient_a copy_n and_o here_o i_o shall_v have_v part_v with_o d._n prideaux_n but_o that_o there_o be_v somewhat_o in_o the_o paper_n as_o it_o be_v now_o publish_v to_o the_o world_n by_o m._n sanderson_n which_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o have_v a_o answer_n though_o not_o hold_v worthy_a of_o that_o honour_n when_o it_o be_v secret_o disperse_v in_o scatter_a copy_n the_o paper_n tell_v we_o of_o a_o hisse_v which_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v give_v and_o make_v the_o doctor_n sure_o that_o such_o a_o hiss_v be_v give_v when_o the_o respondent_fw-la exclude_v king_n and_o parliament_n from_o be_v part_n of_o the_o church_n 29._o but_o first_o the_o respondent_fw-la be_v as_o sure_o that_o he_o never_o exclude_v king_n and_o parliament_n from_o be_v part_n of_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o diffusive_a body_n of_o it_o but_o deny_v they_o to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o convocation_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n of_o england_n represent_v in_o a_o national_n council_n to_o which_o the_o power_n of_o decree_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o determine_v controversy_n in_o faith_n as_o well_o as_o to_o other_o assembly_n of_o that_o nature_n be_v ascribe_v by_o the_o article_n which_o as_o it_o do_v deserve_v no_o hiss_v so_o the_o respondent_fw-la be_v assure_v no_o such_o hiss_n be_v give_v when_o those_o word_n be_v speak_v if_o any_o hiss_n be_v give_v at_o all_o as_o perhaps_o there_o be_v it_o may_v be_v rather_o when_o the_o doctor_n go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o convocation_n but_o the_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n which_o have_v the_o power_n of_o order_v matter_n in_o the_o church_n in_o make_v canon_n ordain_v ceremony_n and_o determine_v controversy_n in_o religion_n and_o can_v find_v out_o no_o other_o medium_n to_o make_v it_o good_a but_o the_o authority_n of_o sir_n ed._n cook_n a_o learned_a but_o mere_a common_a lawyer_n in_o one_o of_o the_o book_n of_o his_o report_n a_o argument_n if_o by_o that_o name_n it_o may_v be_v call_v which_o the_o respondent_fw-la think_v not_o fit_a to_o gratify_v with_o a_o better_a answer_n than_o non_fw-la credendum_fw-la esse_fw-la quoquo_fw-la extra_fw-la artem_fw-la svam_fw-la immediate_o whereupon_o the_o doctor_n give_v place_n to_o the_o next_o opponent_n which_o put_v a_o end_n unto_o the_o heat_n of_o that_o disputation_n in_o which_o if_o the_o doctor_n do_v affirm_v that_o the_o church_n be_v mera_fw-fr chimaera_n 6._o as_o it_o seem_v he_o do_v what_o other_o plaster_n soever_o he_o may_v find_v to_o salve_v that_o sore_n i_o be_o sure_a he_o can_v not_o charge_v it_o on_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o the_o respondent_o answer_n who_o keep_v himself_o too_o close_o to_o the_o churâh-representative_a consist_v of_o arch-bishop_n bishop_n and_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n in_o their_o several_a counsel_n to_o be_v beat_v from_o it_o by_o any_o argument_n which_o the_o doctor_n have_v produce_v against_o he_o and_o thus_o we_o have_v a_o full_a relation_n of_o the_o difference_n between_o d_o prideaux_n and_o the_o respondent_fw-la forget_v long_o ago_o by_o those_o who_o it_o most_o concern_v and_o now_o unreasonable_o revive_v revive_v as_o little_a to_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o reverend_a name_n and_o live_a fame_n of_o that_o learned_a doctor_n as_o d._n bernard_n publish_v the_o lord_n primate_fw-la letter_n never_o intend_v for_o the_o press_n have_v be_v unto_o the_o honour_n of_o that_o emiânent_a and_o pious_a prelate_n but_o the_o squire_n will_v not_o so_o give_v over_o he_o have_v another_o piece_n in_o store_n which_o must_v now_o be_v print_v though_o write_v as_o long_o since_o as_o any_o of_o the_o lord_n primate_fw-la letter_n or_o the_o doctor_n paper_n and_o must_v be_v print_v now_o to_o show_v what_o slender_a account_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o his_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o respondent_o language_n that_o way_n 12._o in_o reference_n namely_o to_o such_o eminent_a person_n as_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o for_o this_o he_o be_v behold_v to_o some_o friend_n or_o other_o who_o help_v he_o to_o the_o sight_n of_o a_o letter_n write_v by_o d._n haâwell_n in_o the_o year_n 1633._o in_o which_o speak_v of_o m._n heylyn_n since_o doctor_n who_o he_o style_v the_o parton_n of_o that_o pretend_a saint_n george_n he_o have_v these_o word_n of_o he_o viz_o 13._o in_o the_o second_o impression_n of_o his_o book_n where_o he_o have_v occasion_n to_o speak_v of_o